Selected quad for the lemma: scripture_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
scripture_n church_n divine_a infallibility_n 2,487 5 11.8741 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A05223 Dutifull and respective considerations vpon foure seuerall heads of proofe and triall in matters of religion Proposed by the high and mighty prince, Iames King of Great Britayne, France, and Ireland &c. in his late booke of premonition to all christian princes, for clearing his royall person from the imputation of heresy. By a late minister & preacher in England.; Dutifull and respective considerations upon foure severall heads of proofe and triall in matters of religion. Leech, Humphrey, 1571-1629.; Parsons, Robert, 1546-1610. aut 1609 (1609) STC 15362.5; ESTC S100271 179,103 260

There are 37 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

place_n of_o his_o body_n as_o there_o be_v several_a wound_n in_o the_o same_o shed_v his_o most_o precious_a blood_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n if_o after_o all_o this_o do_v and_o suffer_v for_o man_n he_o shall_v have_v leave_v he_o no_o certain_a mean_n or_o infallible_a way_n for_o his_o obtain_v the_o fruit_n thereof_o by_o discern_v between_o heresy_n and_o catholic_a religion_n 50._o furthermore_o since_o heresy_n as_o all_o ancient_a and_o modern_a orthodox_n divine_v notify_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o choose_v or_o make_v choice_n that_o be_v yet_o more_o plain_o to_o adhere_v obstinate_o to_o a_o man_n own_o private_a opinion_n and_o proper_a election_n when_o soever_o different_a point_n of_o religion_n be_v propose_v unto_o he_o if_o they_o there_o be_v not_o some_o perspicuous_a &_o apparent_a rule_n and_o reason_n leave_v by_o christ_n to_o convince_v unto_o each_o belief_n man_n conscience_n and_o understanding_n or_o at_o least_o to_o make_v a_o sufficient_a conviction_n which_o be_v truth_n and_o which_o be_v not_o which_o be_v heresy_n and_o which_o be_v verity_n which_o to_o be_v embrace_v and_o which_o be_v to_o be_v abandon_v i_o say_v if_o this_o way_n rule_n and_o reason_n be_v not_o most_o clear_o leave_v in_o the_o church_n whereby_o a_o man_n may_v guide_v himself_o then_o why_o may_v not_o a_o man_n make_v his_o proper_a choice_n and_o use_v that_o benefit_n of_o his_o own_o election_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n which_o god_n have_v bestow_v upon_o he_o in_o moral_a and_o civil_a affair_n permit_v therein_o a_o choice_n to_o his_o free_a will_n why_o may_v he_o not_o choose_v or_o be_v a_o chooser_n which_o in_o our_o sense_n and_o the_o church_n acception_n and_o appropriation_n of_o the_o word_n import_v a_o heretic_n without_o so_o grievous_a and_o damnable_a a_o sin_n as_o heresy_n be_v by_o we_o already_o disclose_v to_o be_v why_o shall_v a_o man_n be_v damn_v by_o his_o own_o judgement_n be_v leave_v inexcusable_a for_o that_o no_o plea_n of_o pretend_a ignorance_n will_v serve_v his_o turn_n since_o be_v such_o a_o chooser_n or_o heretical_a man_n as_o s._n paul_n call_v he_o and_o brand_v he_o for_o he_o can_v say_v nemo_fw-la corripuit_fw-la as_o s._n chrysostome_n s._n ambrose_n theophilact_n &_o oecumenius_n joint_o expound_v the_o place_n for_o if_o the_o mean_n and_o way_n of_o conviction_n &_o decision_n be_v not_o infallible_a it_o shall_v seem_v that_o man_n may_v make_v his_o choice_n but_o this_o particular_a choice_n and_o election_n out_o of_o a_o man_n own_o head_n and_o private_a judgement_n which_o make_v a_o choosier_n or_o heretical_a man_n be_v severe_o prohibit_v and_o condemn_v and_o that_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o s._n paul_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v at_o large_a &_o therefore_o it_o must_v follow_v by_o force_n &_o of_o necessary_a and_o inevitable_a consequence_n that_o almighty_a god_n out_o of_o the_o depth_n of_o his_o mercy_n wisdom_n equity_n and_o piety_n have_v leave_v unto_o we_o some_o evident_a universal_a certain_a and_o infallible_a way_n for_o decide_v of_o all_o doubt_n and_o controversy_n in_o religion_n for_o so_o he_o promise_v when_o isaiah_n prophesy_v thus_o say_v 38._o that_o at_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o holy_a path_n and_o a_o way_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v unto_o you_o a_o direct_a way_n so_o as_o fool_n may_v not_o err_v therein_o thus_o he_o prophesy_v and_o be_v there_o any_o doubt_n that_o he_o perform_v it_o have_v he_o promise_v and_o shall_v not_o he_o make_v it_o good_a have_v he_o speak_v it_o &_o shall_v he_o alter_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v go_v out_o of_o his_o lip_n atheism_n heresy_n and_o infidelity_n may_v 19_o question_v it_o but_o all_o religion_n piety_n and_o christianity_n will_v undoubted_o believe_v the_o same_o 51._o wherefore_o this_o ground_n be_v presuppose_v and_o grant_v as_o a_o chief_a principle_n in_o christian_a religion_n that_o there_o out_o be_v some_o such_o way_n leave_v unto_o we_o whither_o we_o must_v have_v recourse_n in_o all_o doubtful_a cause_n and_o controversy_n of_o religion_n the_o question_n than_o be_v betwixt_o the_o protestant_n and_o those_o of_o the_o catholic_a roman_a religion_n where_o and_o what_o this_o way_n be_v how_o we_o may_v come_v to_o the_o notice_n of_o it_o and_o in_o what_o manner_n it_o be_v to_o be_v follow_v after_o it_o be_v once_o find_v out_o the_o protestant_a common_o of_o what_o sect_n or_o faction_n soever_o he_o be_v aver_v that_o the_o write_a word_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v this_o infallible_a way_n &_o directory-guid_a and_o this_o he_o do_v not_o in_o my_o conscience_n so_o much_o for_o any_o honour_n and_o reverence_n that_o he_o bear_v unto_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n sacred_a writ_n as_o he_o will_v false_o bear_v the_o world_n in_o hand_n he_o do_v but_o only_a upon_o a_o heretical_a intent_n that_o he_o may_v avoid_v thereby_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o no_o marvel_n for_o qui_fw-la malè_fw-la agit_fw-fr odit_fw-la lucem_fw-la the_o guilt_n of_o his_o 20._o heresy_n fly_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n some_o other_o do_v add_v that_o when_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o perspicuous_a and_o obvious_a unto_o every_o man_n then_o for_o explication_n of_o the_o word_n they_o may_v inquire_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o inspire_v each_o man_n and_o that_o will_v instruct_v he_o and_o lead_v he_o unto_o all_o truth_n but_o now_o this_o false_o suppose_v and_o imaginary_a spirit_n can_v be_v no_o infallible_a rule_n of_o direction_n for_o spirit_n that_o s._n john_n have_v give_v we_o a_o caveat_n touch_v these_o false_a spirit_n belove_a believe_v not_o every_o spirit_n but_o try_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n for_o many_o false_a prophet_n be_v go_v forth_o into_o the_o world_n and_o be_v not_o this_o the_o common_a trick_n of_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n and_o heresy_n do_v they_o not_o all_o of_o they_o plead_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n against_o the_o lively_a authority_n and_o speak_a voice_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o the_o whole_a rank_n of_o ancient_a father_n that_o write_v against_o they_o thunder_z out_z that_o terrible_a commination_n threaten_v a_o fearful_a woe_n and_o vengeance_n unto_o all_o private_a lie_v and_o deceyve_a spirit_n vae_fw-la illis_fw-la qui_fw-la sequuntur_fw-la spiritum_fw-la suum_fw-la woe_n be_v unto_o they_o that_o follow_v their_o own_o spirit_n last_o have_v not_o all_o ancient_a heresy_n and_o heretic_n arian_n nestorian_n pelagian_n &c._n &c._n be_v unjust_o condemn_v and_o therefore_o must_v not_o their_o heresy_n be_v rake_v out_o of_o the_o ash_n of_o hell_n again_o and_o set_v fresh_a foot_n in_o the_o church_n if_o the_o rule_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n be_v each_o man_n his_o private_a spirit_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v for_o that_o all_o of_o they_o vaunt_v of_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o sectary_n do_v at_o this_o day_n well_o then_o the_o conclusion_n be_v that_o this_o vaunt_a of_o the_o spirit_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o horrible_a belie_n and_o presumptuous_a blaspheme_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n make_v that_o spirit_n of_o unite_a verity_n a_o spirit_n of_o distract_a heresy_n and_o therefore_o this_o their_o private_a spirit_n can_v be_v no_o rule_n to_o direct_v they_o any_o long_o and_o so_o much_o of_o this_o way_n in_o follow_v every_o man_n his_o own_o spirit_n 52._o and_o now_o for_o the_o former_a way_n of_o follow_v canonical_a scripture_n for_o this_o only_a rule_n and_o sure_a direction_n though_o this_o be_v ever_o to_o be_v grant_v as_o most_o true_a that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n breathe_v by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v divine_a and_o of_o infallible_a truth_n and_o direction_n when_o they_o be_v by_o the_o church_n both_o know_v to_o be_v scripture_n &_o right_o interpret_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o church_n voice_n &_o sense_n yet_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o scripture_n sublimity_n fit_v not_o with_o every_o mean_a and_o ordinary_a capacity_n for_o the_o most_o part_n of_o people_n be_v unlearned_a and_o can_v read_v or_o understand_v what_o they_o read_v much_o less_o those_o learned_a tongue_n wherein_o the_o scripture_n be_v original_o write_v it_o follow_v evident_o that_o the_o scripture_n alone_o can_v be_v no_o sure_a universal_a &_o infallible_a way_n for_o the_o discern_a of_o catholic_a religion_n and_o discover_v of_o heresy_n or_o at_o least_o wise_a this_o rule_n be_v not_o general_a to_o all_o as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v for_o as_o much_o as_o all_o must_v have_v sufficient_a mean_n leave_v for_o their_o salvation_n 53._o but_o here_o i_o think_v i_o hear_v the_o protestant_a object_n that_o howsoever_o the_o scripture_n be_v no_o way_n for_o the_o
so_o order_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o they_o minister_v store_n of_o matter_n unto_o heretic_n when_o i_o read_v in_o scripture_n oportet_fw-la haereses_fw-la esse_fw-la there_o must_v be_v heresy_n which_o can_v be_v without_o scripture_n and_o this_o 39_o be_v my_o former_a author_n his_o judgement_n of_o the_o scripture_n wrest_v and_o pervert_v by_o several_a heretic_n in_o his_o day_n for_o maintenance_n of_o their_o several_a heresy_n which_o be_v so_o here_o be_v neither_o certainty_n nor_o generality_n nor_o facility_n nor_o perspicuity_n nor_o infallibility_n in_o this_o way_n of_o the_o scripture_n bare_o and_o naked_o propose_v of_o itself_o alone_o neither_o can_v it_o ever_o be_v infer_v by_o any_o seem_a probable_a conclusion_n that_o the_o scripture_n alone_o be_v this_o infallible_a way_n which_o we_o do_v further_o illustrate_v by_o this_o familiar_a example_n obvious_a unto_o every_o man_n capacity_n 56._o if_o some_o rude_a and_o unlearned_a countryman_n repair_v up_o to_o the_o metropolitan_a city_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o prosecute_v some_o suit_n in_o law_n touch_v a_o farm_n or_o house_n or_o matter_n of_o less_o moment_n it_o these_o man_n i_o say_v after_o conference_n have_v with_o their_o learned_a counsel_n shall_v receive_v no_o other_o answer_n nor_o comfort_n nor_o direction_n of_o they_o for_o further_o manage_n of_o their_o suit_n but_o be_v remit_v by_o they_o unto_o the_o body_n of_o the_o law_n itself_o without_o any_o judge_n or_o counsailour_n they_o be_v of_o themselves_o not_o able_a either_o to_o read_v or_o understand_v the_o law_n much_o less_o to_o apply_v it_o to_o their_o example_n proper_a case_n and_o peculiar_a suit_n will_v not_o every_o reasonable_a and_o conscionable_a man_n condemn_v these_o lawyer_n and_o have_v not_o the_o poor_a countryman_n themselves_o be_v undo_v by_o this_o mean_n in_o their_o worldly_a estate_n just_a cause_n to_o complain_v and_o cry_v out_o against_o the_o falsehood_n and_o treachery_n of_o their_o counsellor_n and_o yet_o behold_v here_o in_o a_o suit_n of_o of_o suit_n and_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n and_o importance_n in_o the_o world_n not_o in_o a_o title_n or_o trial_n of_o a_o farm_n or_o house_n but_o concern_v our_o interest_n and_o right_n of_o inheritance_n unto_o the_o heavenly_a mansion_n we_o be_v this_o way_n worse_o than_o thus_o since_o the_o matter_n be_v of_o far_o great_a importance_n abuse_v delude_v betray_v we_o be_v promiscuous_o send_v learned_a unlearned_a man_n woman_n young_a old_a to_o the_o body_n of_o the_o scripture_n &_o mystical_a volume_n of_o god_n his_o sacred_a and_o seaven-fold-sealed_n book_n as_o s._n john_n speak_v of_o the_o revelation_n apocal._n 5._o 1._o we_o must_v seek_v search_n confer_v compare_v expound_v interpret_v every_o man_n must_v there_o be_v a_o chooser_n every_o woman_n a_o expositor_n and_o every_o creature_n must_v be_v his_o own_o carver_n all_o must_v presume_v of_o the_o spirit_n that_o they_o can_v err_v all_o presume_v to_o be_v teach_v immediate_o from_o god_n without_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n sola_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la arse_a say_v s._n hierome_n against_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n quam_fw-la omnes_fw-la sibi_fw-la vendicant_a hanc_fw-la garrula_fw-la anus_fw-la hanc_fw-la delirus_fw-la senex_fw-la hanc_fw-la sophista_fw-la verbosus_fw-la hanc_fw-la universi_fw-la praesumunt_fw-la lacerant_fw-la docent_fw-la antequam_fw-la discunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n only_o the_o art_n of_o scripture_n be_v it_o presb._n which_o every_o one_o challenge_v to_o himself_o this_o the_o prate_a old_a wife_n this_o the_o dote_a old_a man_n this_o the_o babble_a sophist_n this_o all_o of_o they_o together_o presume_v to_o know_v and_o teach_v and_o tear_v in_o piece_n before_o they_o learn_v it_o so_o he_o scripture_n and_o this_o be_v all_o the_o way_n and_o ground_n prescription_n direction_n rule_n and_o line_n that_o our_o heretical_a sectary_n can_v afford_v we_o for_o the_o guide_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o the_o ground_v of_o our_o faith_n will_v any_o man_n therefore_o hereafter_o that_o have_v but_o the_o least_o care_n or_o that_o can_v entertain_v but_o one_o thought_n either_o of_o the_o present_a of_o future_a wellfarre_o of_o his_o soul_n rely_v upon_o such_o false_a guide_n &_o blind_a teacher_n since_o this_o ground_n of_o scripture_n alone_o sense_v by_o a_o private_a spirit_n be_v be_v &_o ever_o shall_v be_v the_o common_a ground_n nay_o rather_o desperate_a shift_n and_o refuge_n of_o all_o condemn_a heresy_n and_o heretic_n and_o that_o purposely_o that_o they_o may_v avoid_v the_o censure_n and_o tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n 57_o there_o follow_v then_o the_o way_n indeed_o appoint_v by_o god_n reveal_v by_o the_o holy-ghost_n design_v by_o christ_n church_n and_o propose_v by_o the_o catholic_n and_o catholic_a church_n and_o this_o be_v the_o sure_a easy_a evident_a general_a and_o infallible_a way_n indeed_o which_o be_v the_o universal_a know_a catholic_a church_n in_o every_o age_n which_o be_v perspicuous_a and_o notorious_a easy_a to_o be_v find_v for_o that_o it_o can_v be_v hide_v it_o be_v compare_v by_o holy_a scripture_n to_o a_o city_n place_v upon_o a_o hill_n as_o s._n augustine_n in_o diverse_a prolix_a treatise_n of_o he_o do_v evident_o 4._o demonstrate_v it_o be_v a_o light_n upon_o a_o candlestick_n it_o lighten_v all_o through_o the_o egyptian_a darkness_n of_o this_o world_n schism_n and_o heresy_n and_o lead_v their_o soul_n into_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v that_o pillar_n of_o fire_n that_o lead_v all_o god_n choose_a people_n through_o the_o vast_a and_o roar_a wilderness_n yea_o and_o all_o the_o night_n darkness_n of_o this_o world_n unto_o the_o promise_a land_n of_o canaan_n i_o mean_v the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n it_o be_v general_o also_o figure_v by_o the_o dew_n that_o fall_v upon_o the_o floor_n as_o well_o as_o upon_o the_o fleece_n when_o gedeon_n require_v the_o miracle_n to_o be_v double_v which_o be_v a_o mystical_a representation_n of_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n and_o christian_a congregation_n imply_v also_o that_o the_o dew_n of_o god_n truth_n and_o save_a grace_n shall_v at_o last_o pass_v 12._o from_o the_o fleece_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o the_o floor_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o all_o to_o teach_v we_o that_o this_o catholic_n christian_n church_n shall_v extend_v to_o all_o serve_v for_o all_o learned_a unlearned_a young_a 40._o old_a high_a low_a great_a small_a for_o that_o all_o sort_n sex_n age_n and_o condition_n of_o people_n may_v repair_v unto_o she_o receive_v her_o doctrine_n admit_v her_o instruction_n and_o direction_n by_o the_o continual_a succession_n of_o her_o bishop_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n of_o every_o age_n and_o final_o this_o way_n be_v a_o most_o sure_a certain_a and_o infallible_a rule_n for_o that_o christ_n have_v express_o assure_v and_o promise_v we_o that_o he_o will_v be_v continual_o with_o this_o church_n unto_o the_o world_n end_n that_o he_o will_v send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o instruct_v direct_v and_o induce_v this_o church_n in_o omnem_fw-la veritatem_fw-la into_o all_o truth_n &_o suggerit_fw-la vobis_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la dixere_fw-la vobis_fw-la and_o it_o shall_v suggest_v unto_o you_o all_o that_o i_o will_v from_o heaven_n speak_v or_o notify_v unto_o you_o it_o be_v christ_n his_o promise_n unto_o his_o apostle_n &_o in_o their_o person_n unto_o his_o church_n for_o ever_o and_o last_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n which_o be_v the_o gate_n of_o error_n and_o heresy_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o this_o 18._o church_n 58._o this_o then_o to_o exclude_v all_o bypath_n and_o blind_a way_n of_o heretic_n be_v the_o way_n indeed_o this_o be_v that_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o tertullian_n speak_v institute_v by_o christ_n and_o it_o be_v such_o a_o rule_n and_o so_o certain_a that_o nullas_fw-la habet_fw-la apud_fw-la nos_fw-la quaestiones_fw-la nisi_fw-la quae_n haereses_fw-la inserunt_fw-la &_o quae_fw-la haereticos_fw-la saciunt_fw-la no_o question_n be_v 14_o so_o much_o as_o move_v with_o we_o concern_v this_o rule_n but_o such_o as_o heresy_n cause_n and_o which_o very_a question_n move_v concern_v the_o church_n do_v cause_n and_o breed_v heretic_n 59_o this_o church_n be_v once_o publish_v by_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o promise_n he_o have_v make_v unto_o her_o be_v once_o diwlge_v what_o follow_v but_o that_o all_o man_n present_o that_o have_v any_o care_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n flock_v unto_o she_o begin_v to_o lay_v handfast_a and_o houldfast_n on_o this_o way_n and_o to_o have_v recourse_n in_o all_o doubt_n and_o controversy_n unto_o the_o common_a know_a catholic_a church_n of_o their_o age_n for_o explication_n and_o final_a decision_n thereof_o so_o shall_v you_o read_v act._n 15_o 6._o that_o the_o apostle_n immediate_o after_o the_o ascension_n church_n of_o our_o saviour_n assemble_v the_o church_n together_o for_o the_o detide_n of_o that_o
concur_v and_o conjoin_v themselves_o with_o calvin_n and_o the_o caluinist_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n 39_o and_o yet_o i_o do_v not_o perceive_v how_o his_o majesty_n assertion_n here_o about_o these_o book_n do_v not_o rather_o agree_v with_o the_o lutheran_n then_o with_o the_o caluiniste_n for_o so_o much_o as_o he_o hold_v all_o those_o book_n for_o apocrypha_fw-la &_o no_o canonical_a scripture_n which_o be_v name_v by_o bellarmine_n to_o be_v secundiordinis_fw-la in_o which_o second_o order_n as_o before_o have_v be_v declare_v the_o cardinal_n comprehend_v also_o these_o epistle_n to_o wit_n the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n that_o of_o s._n james_n and_o the_o apocalypse_n and_o consequent_o it_o be_v necessary_o deduce_v and_o infer_v upon_o his_o majesties_n word_n and_o discourse_n that_o he_o hould_v these_o for_o no_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o this_o be_v contrary_n unto_o calvin_n and_o unto_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o unto_o his_o majesty_n himself_o for_o he_o avouch_v they_o to_o be_v scripture_n and_o so_o upon_o my_o knowledge_n do_v the_o present_a church_n of_o england_n and_o last_o his_o majesty_n so_o long_o stand_v upon_o the_o apocalypse_n in_o this_o his_o premonition_n do_v well_o show_v that_o he_o esteem_v it_o for_o scripture_n and_o this_o contradiction_n also_o must_v light_v upon_o he_o who_o against_o knowledge_n and_o conscience_n if_o he_o have_v either_o wrongful_o suggest_v the_o place_n of_o bellarmine_n unto_o his_o majesty_n 40._o but_o my_o main_a conclusion_n of_o all_o be_v this_o that_o nothing_o can_v be_v certain_a as_o here_o it_o be_v sufficient_o prove_v consideration_n when_o a_o man_n once_o depart_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o this_o be_v a_o certain_a rule_n unto_o all_o &_o such_o a_o rule_n as_o be_v authorize_v by_o god_n himself_o for_o then_o every_o man_n may_v make_v and_o unmake_v scripture_n at_o their_o pleasure_n &_o upon_o their_o own_o peril_n but_o sure_o i_o be_o that_o he_o can_v neither_o give_v nor_o take_v away_o divine_a authority_n from_o the_o scripture_n and_o if_o you_o say_v that_o neither_o the_o church_n can_v do_v this_o i_o demand_v first_o who_o be_v thou_o that_o compare_v thyself_o with_o the_o whole_a church_n i_o grant_v it_o to_o be_v true_a but_o yet_o let_v i_o tell_v thou_o this_o withal_o that_o though_o the_o church_n can_v give_v divine_a authority_n to_o any_o writing_n which_o from_o the_o beginning_n be_v not_o true_o scripture_n nor_o take_v away_o the_o same_o from_o any_o part_n of_o that_o which_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n be_v scripture_n yet_o may_v the_o church_n declare_v what_o book_n be_v write_v by_o prophetical_a or_o apostolical_a man_n as_o before_o have_v be_v say_v and_o consequent_o by_o the_o finger_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o so_o be_v canonical_a scripture_n and_o of_o infallible_a truth_n and_o this_o may_v the_o church_n know_v partly_o by_o tradition_n other_o not_o know_v the_o same_o may_v without_o suspicion_n of_o heresy_n doubt_v of_o their_o authority_n before_o the_o say_a declaration_n of_o the_o church_n and_o partly_o also_o by_o the_o ever_o guide_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o her_o synod_n when_o any_o such_o weighty_a matter_n for_o direction_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v treat_v in_o which_o counsel_n the_o say_a church_n after_o due_a inquisition_n make_v and_o invocation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o her_o common_a custom_n be_v may_v no_o less_o conclude_v and_o bind_v all_o with_o visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritui_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la then_o do_v they_o of_o the_o first_o council_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o no_o private_a man_n have_v authority_n to_o do_v though_o luther_n and_o calvin_n presume_v to_o determine_v the_o same_o the_o four_o consideration_n the_o brief_a sum_n of_o all_o hitherto_o treat_v of_o in_o this_o second_o chapter_n concern_v the_o scripture_n be_v in_o effect_n try_v thus_o much_o first_o every_o believe_a &_o appeal_n unto_o scripture_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o prove_v a_o man_n a_o christian_a catholic_a for_o that_o each_o sectary_n do_v offer_v this_o second_o that_o tradition_n without_o scripture_n may_v have_v continue_v as_o sufficient_a for_o instruction_n if_o god_n have_v so_o please_v according_a 1._o to_o that_o of_o s._n irenaeus_n before_o cite_v and_o this_o be_v prove_v for_o that_o both_o the_o church_n under_o the_o law_n and_o under_o the_o 2._o gospel_n be_v institute_v &_o ordain_v by_o tradition_n without_o scripture_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o write_n of_o the_o scripture_n both_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n after_o that_o the_o church_n be_v first_o plant_v three_o the_o write_a 3._o scripture_n be_v distinguish_v &_o discern_v what_o be_v scripture_n and_o what_o not_o what_o canonical_a and_o what_o apocrypha_fw-la and_o that_o by_o tradition_n and_o this_o be_v all_o about_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n only_o there_o rest_v yet_o the_o great_a 4._o point_n of_o all_o and_o of_o most_o importance_n behind_o and_o this_o be_v how_o true_a scripture_n be_v to_o be_v right_o sense_v and_o interpret_v for_o if_o that_o of_o tertullian_n be_v true_a in_o the_o 17._o chapter_n of_o his_o prescription_n tantùm_fw-la veritati_fw-la obstrepit_fw-la adulter_fw-la sensus_fw-la quantùm_fw-la &_o corruptor_n stylus_fw-la a_o false_a gloss_n mar_v the_o truth_n as_o much_o as_o a_o naughty_a text_n or_o that_o of_o s._n hierome_n nec_fw-la putemus_fw-la in_o verbis_fw-la ephes._n scripturarum_fw-la esse_fw-la euangelium_fw-la sedin_fw-fr sensu_fw-la non_fw-la in_o superficie_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o medulla_n non_fw-la in_o sermonum_fw-la foliis_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o radice_fw-la rationis_fw-la neither_o let_v we_o think_v that_o the_o gospel_n rest_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n not_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n not_o in_o the_o rind_n or_o barky_a letter_n of_o the_o word_n but_o in_o the_o marrow_n of_o the_o meaning_n not_o in_o the_o wordy_a leaf_n but_o in_o the_o root_n initium_fw-la of_o reason_n by_o a_o right_a understanding_n thereof_o or_o that_o of_o s._n augustine_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n si_fw-mi in_o scripture_n fanctis_fw-la profunda_fw-la sunt_fw-la mysteria_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la absconduntur_fw-la ne_fw-la vilescant_fw-la ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la quaeruntur_fw-la ut_fw-la exerceant_fw-la ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la aperiuntur_fw-la ut_fw-la passant_a if_o there_o be_v profound_a mystery_n in_o holy_a writ_n which_o be_v therefore_o hide_v that_o they_o become_v not_o vile_a therefore_o seek_v after_o that_o man_n may_v be_v exercise_v and_o set_v on_o work_n therefore_o disclose_v that_o they_o may_v feed_v last_o si_fw-mi mare_fw-la sit_fw-la divina_fw-la scriptura_fw-la habens_fw-la in_o se_fw-la sensus_fw-la constant._n prosundos_fw-la altitudinem_fw-la propheticorum_fw-la aenigmatum_fw-la as_o s._n ambrose_n aver_v if_o divine_a scripture_n be_v a_o sea_n contain_v in_o it_o bottomless_a depth_n of_o profound_a sense_n that_o be_v the_o depth_n of_o prophetical_a riddle_n question_n and_o prediction_n etc._n etc._n si_fw-mi machera_fw-la etc._n etc._n as_o the_o same_o author_n have_v it_o if_o it_o be_v a_o sword_n with_o a_o sharp_a and_o cut_a edge_n oh_o then_o how_o wary_o ought_v we_o lucem_fw-la to_o walk_v in_o this_o way_n of_o sense_a scripture_n quae_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la est_fw-la nisi_fw-la epistola_fw-la quaedam_fw-la omnipotentis_fw-la dei_fw-la ad_fw-la creaturam_fw-la svam_fw-la as_o s._n gregory_n speak_v which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o certain_a epistle_n 40._o of_o the_o omnipotent_a god_n unto_o his_o own_o creature_n 42._o if_o a_o subject_n shall_v either_o malicious_o or_o negligent_o misinterprete_v the_o letter_n of_o his_o prince_n and_o that_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o some_o great_a moment_n shall_v he_o escape_v severe_a punishment_n and_o shall_v the_o treacherous_a heretic_n who_o wilful_o scripture_n and_o malicious_o upon_o his_o own_o perverse_a choice_n deprave_v corrupt_v and_o misinterprete_v the_o scripture_n the_o letter_n epistle_n and_o proper_a hand-writing_n of_o his_o god_n escape_v deserve_v condemnation_n grande_n periculum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la loqui_fw-la ne_fw-la fortè_fw-la interpretatione_n perversa_fw-la de_fw-la euangelio_fw-la christi_fw-la hominis_fw-la fiat_fw-la euangelium_fw-la aut_fw-la quod_fw-la peius_fw-la est_fw-la diaboli_fw-la so_o s._n hierome_n it_o be_v no_o small_a 2._o hazard_n to_o speak_v in_o the_o church_n least_o happy_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n become_v the_o gospel_n of_o man_n or_o that_o which_o be_v worse_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o by_o a_o perverse_a and_o naughty_a interpretation_n be_v the_o scripture_n a_o bottomless_a sea_n and_o be_v there_o no_o danger_n of_o drown_v nay_o damn_v in_o hell_n if_o man_n be_v to_o busy_a with_o it_o to_o abuse_v it_o be_v the_o scripture_n a_o sword_n as_o s._n ambrose_n resemble_v it_o or_o a_o two-edged_a sword_n for_o so_o s._n
further_o i_o find_v that_o the_o jesuit_n be_v never_o so_o strict_a with_o the_o father_n as_o to_o restrain_v their_o credit_n and_o authority_n to_o the_o first_o four_o or_o five_o hundred_o year_n only_o and_o consequent_o to_o accept_v some_o &_o reject_v other_o and_o all_o at_o their_o proper_a pleasure_n as_o the_o protestant_n do_v but_o that_o they_o think_v the_o same_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o same_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v also_o to_o the_o father_n of_o the_o succeed_a age_n and_o shall_v do_v unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 8._o nor_o do_v i_o find_v they_o any_o where_o to_o affirm_v that_o every_o one_o of_o the_o father_n do_v usual_o contradict_v other_o nor_o yet_o be_v they_o ever_o of_o this_o erroneous_a and_o dangerous_a opinion_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o each_o particular_a man_n to_o arrogate_v that_o liberty_n and_o authority_n over_o the_o father_n as_o where_o he_o find_v they_o to_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n there_o to_o believe_v they_o &_o where_o otherwise_o in_o his_o opinion_n there_o with_o their_o reverence_n to_o reject_v they_o for_o that_o this_o will_v come_v to_o the_o same_o issue_n before_o mention_v to_o wit_n that_o every_o man_n private_a judgement_n shall_v be_v his_o own_o rule_n and_o then_o will_v it_o consequent_o follow_v that_o quot_fw-la homines_fw-la tot_fw-la sententiae_fw-la we_o shall_v have_v as_o many_o controversy_n touch_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o father_n as_o we_o have_v already_o about_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o who_o see_v not_o whereunto_o this_o secret_o tend_v even_o to_o leave_v nothing_o sound_a stable_z and_o certain_a in_o religion_n which_o must_v be_v needs_o at_o last_o the_o overthrow_n of_o all_o religion_n 9_o and_o now_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o every_o private_a spirit_n and_o particular_a man_n to_o judge_v when_o father_n do_v allege_v inconvenience_n scripture_n whether_o they_o do_v allege_v they_o right_o to_o the_o purpose_n or_o no_o then_o arise_v another_o question_n interminable_a whether_o in_o all_o liklihood_n of_o reason_n it_o be_v probable_a that_o that_o private_a man_n shall_v understand_v the_o scripture_n better_o than_o that_o father_n or_o ancient_a doctor_n 10._o and_o as_o for_o the_o rule_n of_o s._n augustine_n suggest_v unto_o his_o majesty_n by_o our_o english_a minister_n for_o patronise_a of_o this_o point_n and_o reduce_v of_o all_o both_o scripture_n and_o father_n unto_o the_o examine_v of_o a_o private_a spirit_n i_o have_v diligent_o peruse_v the_o place_n as_o it_o lie_v in_o his_o second_o book_n against_o cresconius_n cap._n 31._o and_o 32._o and_o upon_o a_o exact_a survey_n of_o the_o place_n i_o find_v that_o s._n augustine_n give_v no_o such_o general_a rule_n or_o warrant_v for_o particular_a man_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o father_n write_n and_o citation_n of_o scripture_n use_v by_o they_o but_o only_o in_o the_o case_n and_o cause_n of_o s._n cyprian_n that_o have_v hold_v contrary_a unto_o the_o whole_a church_n viz._n that_o man_n come_v from_o heresy_n be_v to_o be_v rebaptise_v who_o epistle_n also_o be_v urge_v by_o cresconius_n the_o donatist_n against_o s._n augustine_n tamquam_fw-la firmamenta_fw-la canonicae_fw-la veritatis_fw-la as_o ground_n of_o canonical_a truth_n to_o use_v s._n augustine_n his_o word_n i_o say_v upon_o these_o premise_n the_o say_a father_n answer_v thus_o unto_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n cyprian_a object_v that_o in_o a_o manifest_a point_n of_o heresy_n for_o so_o be_v the_o opinion_n and_o yet_o s._n cyprian_n be_v no_o heretik_a since_o he_o never_o defend_v it_o with_o obstinacy_n against_o the_o church_n but_o in_o all_o his_o opinion_n submit_v himself_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n nos_fw-la nullam_fw-la cypriano_n sacimus_fw-la iniuriam_fw-la cum_fw-la eius_fw-la quaslibet_fw-la literas_fw-la à_fw-la canonica_n divinarum_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la distinguimus_fw-la we_o do_v no_o injury_n unto_o cyprian_a when_o we_o do_v distinguish_v any_o of_o his_o epistle_n from_o the_o canonical_a authority_n of_o divine_a scripture_n 11._o and_o afterward_o again_o have_v name_v the_o epistle_n which_o cresconius_n urge_v he_o proceed_v thus_o ego_fw-la huius_fw-la epistolae_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la non_fw-la teneor_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o be_o not_o bind_v to_o admit_v the_o authority_n of_o this_o epistle_n for_o that_o i_o do_v not_o hold_v the_o epistle_n of_o cyprian_a as_o canonical_a but_o do_v consider_v they_o by_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v canonical_a etc._n etc._n final_o after_o a_o long_a praise_n case_n of_o s._n cyprian_n of_o his_o wit_n eloquence_n charity_n and_o martyrdom_n s._n augustine_n conclude_v that_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o yet_o for_o that_o in_o this_o point_n he_o dissent_v from_o the_o residue_n of_o the_o doctor_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n he_o refuse_v to_o follow_v he_o his_o word_n be_v these_o hoc_fw-la quòd_fw-la aliter_fw-la sapuit_fw-la non_fw-la acipio_fw-la non_fw-la accipio_fw-la inquam_fw-la quòd_fw-la de_fw-la baptizandis_fw-la &_o schismaticis_fw-la beatus_fw-la cyprianus_n sensit_fw-la quòd_fw-la hoc_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la accepit_fw-la pro_fw-la quae_fw-la beatus_fw-la cyprianus_n sanguinem_fw-la sudit_fw-la this_o that_o s._n cyprian_n hold_v different_o from_o other_o though_o not_o obstinate_o i_o do_v not_o admit_v i_o do_v not_o admit_v i_o say_v that_o which_o bless_v cyprian_n do_v hold_v about_o the_o rebaptise_v of_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n and_o i_o do_v not_o admit_v it_o for_o that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o admit_v it_o for_o which_o church_n bless_v s._n cyprian_n do_v shed_v his_o blood_n 12._o so_o then_o we_o see_v that_o this_o which_o s._n augustine_n here_o instance_v and_o speak_v of_o compare_v and_o try_v s._n cyprian_n his_o epistle_n by_o the_o scripture_n be_v no_o general_a case_n nor_o common_a rule_n nor_o warrant_v that_o every_o particler_n man_n may_v do_v the_o same_o to_o the_o writer_n of_o every_o particular_a doctor_n for_o first_o s._n augustine_n himself_o that_o make_v this_o examine_v of_o scripture_n be_v a_o great_a and_o learned_a doctor_n yea_o one_o of_o the_o great_a that_o ever_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v and_o consequent_o be_v personal_o invest_v with_o some_o more_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n than_o every_o ordinary_a protestant_n minister_n second_o he_o perceive_v right_o well_o that_o the_o opinion_n of_o s._n cyprian_n be_v much_o like_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o protestant_n at_o this_o day_n to_o wit_n new_a and_o dissonant_n from_o scripture_n and_o different_a from_o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o doctor_n expound_v those_o scripture_n not_o receive_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n nay_o and_o that_o which_o be_v above_o all_o condemn_v by_o the_o church_n three_o s._n augustine_n do_v not_o presume_v upon_o his_o own_o authority_n to_o condemn_v s._n cyprian_n opinion_n as_o dissonant_n from_o the_o scripture_n for_o that_o in_o this_o case_n the_o authority_n of_o s._n cyprian_a may_v seem_v to_o have_v be_v as_o good_a as_o the_o authorty_fw-la of_o s._n augustine_n especial_o have_v seal_v the_o gospel_n with_o his_o blood_n which_o the_o other_o though_o a_o great_a saint_n have_v not_o do_v nor_o be_v put_v unto_o but_o s._n augustine_n find_v s._n cyprian_n his_o opinion_n dissent_v from_o the_o true_a scripture_n exposition_n as_o it_o be_v carry_v along_o by_o the_o most_o holy_a tradition_n of_o catholic_a church_n and_o so_o be_v s._n augustine_n to_o be_v understand_v for_o scripture_n and_o church_n ever_o go_v together_o in_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o they_o never_o understand_v the_o one_o without_o the_o other_o all_o which_o circumstance_n be_v of_o exceed_a weight_n and_o importance_n in_o this_o case_n about_o which_o notwithstanding_o i_o have_v think_v it_o convenient_a as_o before_o so_o here_o to_o lay_v forth_o some_o further_a and_o particular_a consideration_n the_o first_o consideration_n first_o then_o touch_v the_o different_a esteem_n which_o one_o roman_a catholic_n and_o profess_v protestant_n do_v hold_n of_o unanime_fw-la consent_n of_o ancient_a father_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v the_o first_o point_n here_o touch_v &_o therefore_o of_o we_o in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o be_v discuss_v i_o consider_v yet_o further_o what_o i_o have_v read_v in_o s._n augustine_n concern_v this_o point_n which_o holy_a saint_n and_o great_a doctor_n though_o as_o now_o in_o part_n we_o have_v show_v he_o do_v always_o postpone_v what_o authority_n of_o ancient_a father_n soever_o to_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n &_o all_o particular_a opinion_n of_o some_o one_o or_o few_o unto_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o great_a part_n but_o especial_o unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o be_v the_o same_o father_n so_o respective_a in_o all_o his_o write_n to_o conserve_v the_o reverence_n and_o just_a deserve_a reputation_n of_o these_o great_a saint_n and_o servant_n
dutiful_a and_o respective_a consideration_n upon_o four_o several_a head_n of_o proof_n and_o trial_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n propose_v by_o the_o high_a and_o mighty_a prince_n james_n king_n of_o great_a britain_n france_n and_o ireland_n etc._n etc._n in_o his_o late_a book_n of_o premonition_n to_o all_o christian_a prince_n for_o clear_v his_o royal_a person_n from_o the_o imputation_n of_o heresy_n by_o a_o late_a minister_n and_o preacher_n in_o england_n august_n lib._n contrae_fw-la judaeos_fw-la pagan_a &_o arian_n cap._n 20._o you_o must_v know_v dear_a brethren_n that_o true_a faith_n sincere_a peace_n &_o perpetual_a salvation_n be_v only_o by_o the_o catholic_a faith_n for_o it_o be_v not_o in_o a_o corner_n but_o every_o where_o all_o if_o any_o man_n depart_v from_o it_o and_o deliver_v himself_o up_o to_o the_o error_n of_o heretic_n he_o shall_v be_v judge_v and_o condemn_v as_o a_o fugitive_n bondman_n permissu_fw-la superiorum_fw-la m._n dc_o ix_o the_o four_o head_n of_o just_a trial_n mention_v by_o his_o majesty_n of_o england_n as_o touch_v his_o own_o person_n 1._o the_o reverence_v and_o believe_v of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o so_o also_o the_o not_o canonical_a 2._o the_o admit_v of_o the_o first_o three_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n &_o of_o s._n athanasius_n 3._o the_o acknowledge_v &_o accept_v the_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n of_o christendom_n to_o wit_n of_o nice_a of_o constantinople_n of_o ephesus_n &_o of_o chalcedon_n 4._o the_o credit_v of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n either_o joint_o or_o several_o in_o point_n of_o modern_a controversy_n every_o head_n be_v handle_v by_o diverse_a consideration_n as_o by_o the_o sequent_a catalogue_n of_o chapter_n will_v appear_v the_o general_n content_v of_o this_o book_n the_o epistle_n to_o his_o majesty_n declare_v the_o motive_n which_o the_o author_n have_v to_o write_v this_o treatise_n the_o first_o chapter_n contain_v a_o entrance_n into_o this_o treatise_n or_o trial_n how_o much_o it_o import_v to_o be_v a_o catholic_a and_o no_o heretic_n and_o with_o how_o great_a reason_n his_o majesty_n endeavour_v to_o clear_v himself_o and_o his_o royal_a person_n from_o the_o imputation_n of_o heresy_n five_o consideration_n 1_o about_o the_o word_n catholic_a and_o heretic_n and_o that_o they_o can_v never_o agree_v in_o one_o 2_o of_o the_o dreadful_a misery_n of_o be_v a_o heretic_n 3_o how_o a_o man_n may_v certain_o and_o without_o error_n discern_v what_o be_v catholic_a and_o what_o be_v heretical_a 4_o how_o out_o of_o the_o premise_n every_o man_n may_v judge_v in_o what_o state_n he_o stand_v for_o be_v heretic_n or_o catholic_a 5_o the_o conclusion_n of_o all_o this_o whole_a chapter_n to_o his_o majesty_n the_o second_o chapter_n that_o treat_v the_o first_o head_n touch_v by_o his_o majesty_n for_o trial_n of_o a_o christian_a catholic_a which_o be_v the_o believe_a of_o holy_a scripture_n four_o consideration_n 1_o the_o believe_v of_o scripture_n not_o sufficient_a to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o catholic_n 2_o that_o scripture_n be_v not_o write_v for_o many_o year_n after_o the_o church_n begin_v 3_o how_o to_o know_v what_o be_v true_o scripture_n 4_o how_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n may_v be_v try_v the_o three_o chapter_n concern_v the_o second_o point_n or_o general_a head_n profess_v by_o his_o majesty_n concern_v his_o believe_v of_o the_o three_o creed_n receive_v by_o the_o church_n three_o consideration_n 1_o how_o the_o first_o three_o creed_n and_o why_o they_o be_v ordain_v and_o how_o great_o they_o be_v to_o be_v reverence_v 2_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o england_n believe_v not_o whole_o &_o entire_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o three_o creed_n 3_o in_o what_o particular_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n english_a protestant_n do_v not_o agree_v with_o us._n the_o four_o chapter_n concern_v the_o approbation_n &_o allowance_n of_o the_o first_o sour_a general_a counsel_n which_o be_v the_o three_o general_a head_n of_o trial_n offer_v &_o propose_v by_o his_o excellent_a majesty_n of_o england_n three_o consideration_n 1_o why_o and_o how_o these_o four_o first_o counsel_n be_v gather_v and_o how_o thereby_o it_o be_v convince_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v 2_o why_o the_o protestant_n do_v not_o nor_o can_v remedy_v their_o division_n by_o any_o general_n or_o national_n council_n 3_o particular_a point_n of_o difference_n between_o these_o first_o four_o general_n counsel_n and_o the_o protestant_n of_o our_o time_n for_o doctrine_n &_o manner_n the_o five_o chapter_n concern_v the_o admittance_n &_o acceptance_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o four_o &_o last_o head_n of_o trial_n offer_v &_o allege_v by_o his_o majesty_n of_o england_n three_o consideration_n 1_o the_o different_a esteem_n that_o catholic_n &_o protestant_n do_v make_v of_o ancient_a father_n when_o they_o agree_v in_o one_o 2_o how_o catholic_n &_o protestant_n do_v esteem_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o particular_a father_n 3_o that_o the_o father_n of_o every_o age_n for_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n do_v make_v for_o catholic_n &_o against_o protestant_n in_o matter_n now_o in_o controversy_n the_o six_o chapter_n contain_v a_o brief_a contemplation_n of_o what_o hitherto_o have_v be_v say_v with_o a_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a to_o his_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n to_o the_o high_a and_o pvissant_a prince_n my_o dread_a lord_n and_o sovereign_a james_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n of_o great_a britain_n france_n &_o ireland_n king_n etc._n etc._n after_o i_o have_v bend_v myself_o unto_o a_o serious_a survey_v and_o diligent_a perusal_n of_o your_o majesty_n new_a book_n bear_v the_o inscription_n of_o a_o preface_n or_o premonition_n to_o all_o christian_a prince_n diverse_a be_v the_o apprehension_n and_o impression_n it_o make_v in_o the_o different_a faculty_n of_o my_o soul_n revolve_v therefore_o and_o reflect_v upon_o the_o premise_n by_o a_o second_o review_v i_o resolve_v and_o in_o fine_a conclude_v be_v now_o as_o it_o be_v wonderful_o affect_v partly_o with_o solace_n partly_o with_o solicitude_n 2._o my_o solace_n be_v to_o consider_v yea_o sensible_o as_o it_o be_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o my_o soul_n in_o the_o impartial_a glass_n of_o my_o recollectedst_a understanding_n and_o most_o retire_v judgement_n to_o behold_v so_o many_o rare_a princely_a talent_n of_o nature_n literature_n and_o other_o high_o esteem_v part_n in_o your_o majesty_n which_o as_o they_o be_v seldom_o find_v in_o such_o potent_a prince_n so_o reside_v habitual_o in_o your_o royal_a breast_n as_o in_o their_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a subject_n they_o can_v but_o minister_v just_a matter_n of_o marvellous_a joy_n content_n and_o comfort_n unto_o all_o your_o liege_n people_n your_o loyal_a and_o love_a subject_n especial_o since_o they_o be_v accompany_v and_o attend_v yea_o adorn_v nay_o beautify_v with_o the_o irradiant_a lustre_n of_o that_o burn_a fire_n of_o zeal_n i_o mean_v a_o extraordinary_a fervour_n in_o matter_n of_o your_o religion_n now_o if_o these_o so_o rare_a part_n of_o nature_n literature_n and_o zeal_n wherewith_o your_o noble_a person_n be_v habitual_o invest_v shall_v be_v direct_v by_o the_o singer_n of_o god_n his_o holy_a spirit_n &_o the_o high_a hand_n of_o heaven_n unto_o the_o sole-sacred_n and_o soule-saving_a knowledge_n of_o catholic_a religion_n which_o i_o very_o hope_v in_o time_n to_o see_v and_o shall_v incessant_o pray_v for_o they_o will_v exceed_o advance_v his_o glory_n and_o gain_v unto_o your_o majesty_n a_o immarcessible_a &_o never-fading_a crown_n of_o eternity_n 3._o my_o spirit_n also_o rejoice_v within_o i_o my_o hart_n exult_v for_o joy_n &_o my_o perplex_a thought_n retire_v &_o repose_v themselves_o in_o hope_n when_o i_o take_v but_o a_o just_a view_n of_o that_o commendable_a careful_a diligence_n that_o pious_a and_o religious_a industry_n use_v by_o your_o majesty_n in_o vindieat_v your_o noble_a person_n from_o the_o least_o imputation_n of_o herefy_v and_o in_o remove_v the_o very_a suspicion_n of_o such_o a_o contagious_a and_o soul_n quess_v leprosy_n since_o that_o this_o loud-crying_a sin_n loud-crying_a in_o the_o ear_n of_o heaven_n be_v the_o great_a crime_n that_o can_v be_v commit_v against_o god_n or_o his_o church_n separate_v betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n grace_n and_o the_o soul_n dissolve_v the_o mysterial_a 2._o union_n and_o sacramental_a communion_n betwixt_o the_o head_n &_o the_o member_n christ_n &_o his_o spouse_n reject_v god_n for_o father_n deny_v the_o church_n for_o mother_n take_v away_o the_o very_a name_n of_o a_o christian_a as_o ancient_a tertullian_n speak_v deprive_v our_o expectation_n of_o all_o hope_n and_o
salvation_n as_o s._n augustine_n that_o great_a pillar_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n note_v a_o sin_n the_o soul_n guilt_n ecclesiae_fw-la whereof_o nec_fw-la sanguine_fw-la abluitur_fw-la nec_fw-la passione_n purgatur_fw-la to_o close_v up_o the_o period_n with_o that_o renown_a martyr_n s._n cyprian_n his_o word_n 4._o the_o last_o but_o not_o the_o least_o nay_o the_o great_a cause_n of_o my_o comfort_n be_v when_o i_o real_o apprehend_v the_o candour_n serenity_n humility_n and_o sincerity_n of_o your_o noble_a hart_n in_o submit_v yourself_o by_o remit_v the_o trial_n and_o decision_n of_o the_o foresay_a imputation_n and_o suspicion_n of_o heresy_n unto_o the_o sacred_a canon_n of_o holy_a writ_n common_a creed_n the_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n and_o the_o bless_a father_n of_o the_o first_o four_o or_o five_o hundred_o year_n to_o all_o which_o upon_o a_o assure_a i_o may_v rather_o say_v a_o suppose_a innocency_n &_o integrity_n of_o your_o cause_n you_o appeal_v for_o the_o final_a umpiring_a and_o determine_v of_o any_o point_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o the_o catholic_n and_o your_o majesty_n which_o impartial_a and_o substantial_a ground_n as_o they_o be_v very_o prudent_o religious_o and_o with_o great_a maturity_n of_o judgement_n propose_v by_o your_o majesty_n according_a to_o the_o greatness_n and_o soundness_n of_o your_o judicious_a apprehension_n so_o if_o they_o shall_v stand_v inviolable_a and_o irrevocable_a like_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o mede_n &_o persian_n which_o can_v not_o be_v alter_v back_v by_o the_o word_n &_o authority_n of_o so_o potent_a a_o prince_n as_o your_o majesty_n be_v which_o may_v not_o be_v revoke_v for_o the_o word_n be_v go_v forth_o from_o the_o king_n you_o shall_v not_o only_o avert_v and_o avoid_v all_o sinister_a imputation_n and_o suspicion_n whatsoever_o from_o your_o royal_a person_n but_o withal_o you_o 17._o shall_v give_v a_o sufficient_a testimony_n by_o public_a declaration_n of_o your_o majesty_n gracious_a disposition_n for_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o that_o if_o ought_v have_v be_v exorbitant_a extravagant_a or_o irregular_a in_o matter_n of_o your_o belief_n it_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v ascrybed_n to_o your_o violent_a education_n than_o anyway_o to_o be_v impute_v to_o your_o own_o voluntary_a obduration_n these_o thing_n be_v of_o wonderful_a comfort_n &_o exceed_a solace_n unto_o i_o 5._o but_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o this_o sweet_a repose_n whilst_o my_o weary_a and_o perplex_a thought_n seem_v to_o refresh_v themselves_o with_o some_o kind_n of_o promise_a hope_n upon_o the_o foresaid_a premise_n behold_v diverse_a other_o point_n of_o great_a anxiety_n &_o solicitude_n interpose_v themselves_o nay_o sudden_o interrupt_v my_o former_a solace_n i_o mean_v not_o general_o such_o point_n of_o your_o majesty_n book_n as_o may_v concern_v other_o christian_a prince_n people_n and_o state_n how_o these_o thing_n will_v be_v take_v among_o they_o for_o in_o this_o behalf_n i_o may_v not_o presume_v to_o prejudice_n your_o majesties_n grave_a wisdom_n and_o i_o can_v not_o but_o imagine_v but_o that_o your_o majesty_n out_o of_o the_o depth_n of_o your_o own_o provident_a judgement_n have_v due_o and_o prudent_o preponderate_v all_o such_o probable_a ensue_a sequele_n and_o take_v far_o better_a counsel_n than_o i_o can_v be_v but_o such_o as_o particular_o respect_v and_o by_o necessary_a deduction_n of_o a_o certain_a inevitable_a consequence_n reflect_v proper_o upon_o myself_o for_o whereas_o i_o have_v with_o the_o great_a deliberation_n that_o i_o can_v possible_o imagine_v ground_v upon_o my_o own_o peculiar_a experience_n of_o many_o year_n travail_v in_o the_o sacred_a volume_n of_o orthodox_n antiquity_n make_v before_o a_o firm_a irrevokable_a resolution_n to_o abandon_v the_o protestant_a religion_n upon_o invincible_a argument_n of_o great_a solidity_n and_o notorious_a discovery_n of_o execrable_a blasphemy_n palpable_a and_o detestable_a heresy_n against_o god_n his_o christ_n his_o church_n his_o saint_n build_v my_o foundation_n upon_o the_o main_n rock_n of_o ancient_a primitive_a church_n canonical_a scripture_n true_o sense_v by_o they_o creed_n and_o counsel_n digest_v collect_v establish_v by_o they_o i_o now_o descry_v that_o your_o majesty_n intend_v to_o ground_v the_o clean_a contrary_a plea_n upon_o the_o same_o head_n for_o vindication_n of_o the_o protestant_n religion_n from_o the_o guilty_a crime_n of_o heresy_n the_o very_a intimation_n whereof_o inforce_v i_o i_o confess_v before_o the_o all-seeing_a judge_n and_o unto_o your_o sovereign_a majesty_n my_o supreme_a terrene_a lord_n next_o under_o he_o to_o look_v about_o i_o and_o to_o enter_v into_o a_o second_o and_o more_o serious_a consideration_n and_o meditation_n of_o the_o foresay_a head_n again_o lest_o i_o may_v happy_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o the_o great_a moment_n and_o weighty_a consequence_n in_o this_o world_n have_v run_v awry_o to_o the_o everlasting_a wrack_n and_o ruin_n of_o my_o soul_n 6._o now_o for_o aught_o that_o may_v concern_v your_o majesty_n royal_a person_n touch_v the_o imputation_n of_o heresy_n let_v that_o loud-crying_a sin_n of_o open_a rebellion_n against_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o heaven_n rather_o light_v upon_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n his_o christ_n his_o church_n and_o the_o enemy_n of_o my_o sovereign_n then_o upon_o my_o lord_n the_o king_n who_o the_o god_n of_o angel_n make_v as_o a_o angel_n of_o god_n to_o discern_v betwixt_o heretical_a novelty_n and_o catholic_a antiquity_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o find_v no_o difficulty_n nay_o i_o do_v with_o all_o alacrity_n and_o sincerity_n of_o soul_n admit_v the_o difference_n between_o a_o heretic_n and_o he_o that_o give_v credit_n unto_o heretic_n which_o s._n augustine_n admit_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o his_o friend_n honoratus_n seduce_v by_o the_o donatist_n as_o your_o majesty_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v mislead_v by_o protestant_n it_o be_v in_o that_o excellent_a tract_n of_o his_o de_fw-la utilitate_fw-la credendi_fw-la write_v to_o his_o say_a friend_n si_fw-mi mihi_fw-la honorate_v unum_fw-la atque_fw-la idem_fw-la videretur_fw-la esse_fw-la haereticus_fw-la &_o credens_fw-fr haereticis_fw-la homo_fw-la tam_fw-la lingua_fw-la quam_fw-la stylo_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la causa_fw-la conquiescendum_fw-la esse_fw-la arbitrarer_fw-la etc._n etc._n cum_fw-la haec_fw-la ergo_fw-la ita_fw-la sunt_fw-la non_fw-la putavi_fw-la apud_fw-la te_fw-la silendum_fw-la esse_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o i_o be_v persuade_v o_o honoratus_n that_o a_o heretic_n and_o the_o man_n who_o do_v believe_v heretic_n be_v all_o one_o and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n i_o shall_v suppose_v that_o i_o may_v spare_v both_o tongue_n and_o pen_n in_o this_o point_n but_o now_o since_o there_o be_v no_o small_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o two_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n in_o my_o judgement_n who_o for_o some_o temporal_a commodity_n and_o especial_o for_o renown_n and_o sovereignty_n either_o bring_v forth_o false_a and_o new_a opinion_n of_o himself_o or_o else_o adher_v unto_o they_o that_o be_v bring_v forth_o by_o other_o but_o he_o that_o give_v credulity_n to_o these_o kind_n of_o man_n be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v delude_v with_o a_o certain_a imagination_n of_o verity_n and_o piety_n wherefore_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o i_o have_v think_v good_a not_o to_o be_v silent_a or_o to_o hold_v my_o peace_n with_o you_o what_o my_o judgement_n be_v concern_v the_o find_v out_o and_o retain_v of_o truth_n 7._o we_o then_o that_o be_v your_o majesties_n catholic_a subject_n dutiful_a in_o mind_n though_o different_a in_o judgement_n do_v out_o of_o the_o abundance_n of_o our_o most_o loyal_a affection_n and_o to_o mitigate_v matter_n what_o may_v be_v until_o almighty_a god_n of_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n shall_v vouchsafe_v to_o put_v further_a remedy_n in_o your_o understanding_n hart_n by_o a_o more_o clear_a reveal_n of_o his_o truth_n most_o cheerful_o and_o charitable_o fasten_v upon_o that_o pious_a religious_a &_o true_a distinction_n of_o s._n augustine_n not_o ascribe_v that_o hateful_a name_n of_o heretic_n unto_o your_o majesty_n howsoever_o you_o seem_v for_o the_o present_a to_o adhere_v and_o patronize_v such_o opinion_n of_o protestant_a religion_n as_o we_o upon_o contrary_a ground_n of_o catholic_a divinity_n do_v hold_v to_o be_v heresy_n but_o rather_o we_o esteem_v your_o majesty_n for_o a_o prince_n that_o from_o your_o nativity_n and_o tender_a infancy_n after_o the_o unfortunate_a loss_n of_o your_o thrice_o noble_a catholic_a mother_n have_v be_v misguide_a in_o matter_n of_o religion_n by_o such_o as_o have_v your_o noble_a person_n in_o their_o government_n who_o you_o have_v believe_v and_o consequent_o have_v be_v deceive_v imaginatione_fw-la quadam_fw-la veritatis_fw-la &_o pietatis_fw-la illusus_fw-la to_o end_v the_o sentence_n with_o s._n augustine_n his_o word_n 8._o and_o here_o in_o all_o dutiful_a submission_n as_o a_o true_a english-harted_n man_n and_o loyal_a subject_n to_o
door_n of_o the_o church_n the_o one_o of_o they_o must_v of_o necessity_n serve_v the_o other_o so_o impossible_a it_o be_v that_o two_o so_o contrary_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o shall_v stand_v together_o such_o be_v the_o implacable_a hostility_n and_o extreme_a opposition_n betwixt_o they_o 7._o when_o abraham_n the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a for_o so_o the_o scripture_n style_v he_o perceive_v that_o a_o breach_n may_v happy_o fall_v out_o betwixt_o he_o and_o his_o nephew_n lot_n upon_o a_o dissension_n already_o begin_v betwixt_o their_o herdsman_n he_o call_v unto_o he_o consult_v the_o case_n treat_v and_o intreat_v with_o he_o and_o to_o persuade_v he_o to_o unity_n use_v ●_o this_o motive_n of_o all_o the_o most_o persuasive_a let_v there_o be_v no_o dissension_n betwixt_o i_o and_o thou_o betwixt_o my_o herdsman_n and_o thy_o herdsman_n for_o we_o be_v brethren_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o fare_v not_o thus_o betwixt_o the_o catholic_a and_o the_o heretic_n no_o union_n can_v be_v make_v no_o communion_n have_v no_o condition_n of_o peace_n to_o be_v treat_v and_o offer_v betwixt_o they_o and_o if_o you_o will_v have_v the_o reason_n of_o this_o they_o be_v no_o brethren_n nay_o which_o be_v more_o they_o can_v be_v brethren_n for_o the_o catholic_a in_o his_o spiritual_a birth_n have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n and_o the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n whereas_o the_o heretic_n have_v a_o hittite_n to_o his_o father_n and_o a_o amonite_n to_o his_o mother_n that_o be_v satan_n be_v his_o father_n and_o schism_n be_v his_o mother_n he_o be_v a_o stranger_n to_o the_o covenant_n and_o a_o mere_a alien_n to_o the_o household_n 22._o of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o as_o ichu_n first_o answer_v jehoram_n his_o messenger_n demand_v of_o peace_n quid_fw-la vobis_fw-la est_fw-la paci_fw-la what_o have_v you_o to_o do_v with_o peace_n get_v you_o behind_o i_o follow_v i_o etc._n etc._n and_o second_o unto_o jehoram_n himself_o when_o he_o come_v in_o person_n to_o meet_v he_o and_o demand_v be_v it_o peace_n jehu_n what_o peace_n while_o the_o fornication_n of_o thy_o mother_n jezabel_n and_o her_o witchcraft_n be_v yet_o in_o such_o abundance_n so_o what_o peace_n can_v the_o catholic_a make_v with_o the_o heretic_n while_o his_o heresy_n worse_o than_o the_o sin_n of_o witchcraft_n alieni_fw-la and_o his_o spiritual_a fornication_n in_o worship_v of_o false_a god_n that_o be_v entertain_v false_a opinion_n in_o religion_n and_o dissonant_n from_o catholic_a faith_n continue_v a_o terrible_a 13._o caveat_n to_o all_o temporizer_n that_o will_v make_v a_o linsey-wolsey_a 15._o of_o all_o religion_n reconcile_n catholic_a religion_n with_o protestant_n heresy_n which_o be_v as_o possible_a as_o to_o unite_v thing_n most_o contrary_a and_o deadly_a jar_a to_o these_o i_o can_v give_v no_o other_o counsel_n than_o such_o as_o elias_n give_v to_o the_o worshipper_n of_o baal_n when_o his_o fiery_a zeal_n will_v admit_v no_o division_n betwixt_o idolatrous_a superstition_n and_o god_n most_o pure_a and_o undefiled_a religion_n how_o long_o will_v you_o halt_v betwixt_o 18._o two_o opinion_n if_o baal_n be_v god_n follow_v he_o but_o if_o god_n be_v god_n follow_v he_o etc._n etc._n the_o application_n be_v if_o heretical_a innovation_n be_v god_n his_o true_a worship_n follow_v it_o but_o if_o catholic_a tradition_n be_v the_o only_a true_a and_o soule-saving_a religion_n then_o under_o eternal_a pain_n &_o hazard_v of_o your_o soul_n resolve_v halt_v no_o long_o betwixt_o the_o two_o god_n will_v either_o have_v all_o or_o none_o he_o care_v not_o for_o a_o hart_n and_o a_o hart_n a_o divided_a hart_n and_o the_o church_n will_v receive_v none_o within_o her_o bosom_n nor_o help_v to_o save_v any_o with_o her_o sacrament_n but_o such_o as_o be_v her_o trueborn_a child_n constant_o profess_v her_o piety_n abandon_v all_o kind_n of_o schism_n &_o heresy_n and_o secure_o rest_v only_o and_o true_o within_o her_o bosom_n 8._o and_o although_o i_o do_v not_o affirm_v that_o all_o catholic_n shall_v be_v save_v for_o that_o evil_a life_n and_o matter_n of_o fact_n may_v condemn_v as_o well_o as_o bad_a belief_n and_o matter_n of_o faith_n yet_o be_o i_o most_o certain_a and_o i_o dare_v pronounce_v it_o that_o all_o heretic_n so_o live_v and_o so_o die_v shall_v be_v damn_v agree_v with_o that_o so_o often_o time_n reiterated_a by_o s._n cyprian_a numquam_fw-la perveniet_fw-la ad_fw-la praemia_fw-la christi_fw-la qui_fw-la relinquit_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la christi_fw-la 5._o alienus_fw-la est_fw-la profanus_fw-la est_fw-la hostess_fw-la est_fw-la he_o shall_v never_o aspire_v to_o heavenly_a glory_n that_o forsake_v the_o church_n verity_n and_o fall_v away_o from_o christ_n by_o apostasy_n he_o be_v a_o forreyner_n he_o be_v profane_a he_o be_v a_o enemy_n and_o as_o all_o perish_a without_o the_o ark_n and_o be_v certain_o corporal_o drown_v so_o assure_o all_o without_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v eternal_o be_v damn_v since_o the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o that_o this_o ark_n be_v a_o lively_a type_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o a_o heretic_n and_o a_o catholic_a can_n never_o be_v join_v together_o in_o heaven_n so_o can_v never_o the_o catholic_a and_o heretic_n catholic_a religion_n and_o heresy_n in_o any_o one_o point_n be_v conjoin_v upon_o earth_n this_o be_v the_o uniform_a and_o unanime_fw-la to_o use_v his_o majesty_n word_n consent_v of_o all_o orthodox_n pious_a and_o religious_a divine_n 9_o the_o reason_n of_o all_o the_o foresay_a opposition_n betwixt_o a_o right-beleeving_a catholic_a and_o a_o misbelieve_a heretic_n be_v this_o the_o catholic_a know_v nay_o believe_v it_o as_o the_o groundwork_n of_o his_o faith_n that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n have_v leave_v the_o world_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o visible_a presence_n continue_v invisible_a by_o the_o immediate_a assistance_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n with_o his_o church_n which_o be_v domus_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o porta_n caeli_fw-la the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n as_o jacob_n 17_o speak_v of_o the_o place_n of_o his_o vision_n columna_fw-la &_o firmamentum_fw-la veritatis_fw-la the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n unto_o this_o 15_o church_n our_o saviour_n reveal_v all_o his_o secret_n that_o concern_v her_o salvation_n make_v she_o of_o his_o privy_a counsel_n govern_v she_o visible_o first_o by_o his_o own_o person_n second_o by_o his_o apostle_n direct_v she_o invisible_o by_o his_o immediate_a spirit_n the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o so_o continue_v she_o under_o visible_a government_n and_o invisible_a direction_n unto_o the_o world_n general_a consummation_n lead_v she_o into_o all_o truth_n such_o be_v his_o promise_n make_v unto_o she_o and_o here_o be_v the_o performance_n and_o the_o reason_n that_o the_o church_n be_v thus_o near_o and_o dear_a unto_o christ_n be_v this_o corpus_fw-la est_fw-la she_o be_v his_o body_n according_a to_o that_o of_o s._n augustine_n totum_fw-la quod_fw-la annunciatur_fw-la de_fw-la christo_fw-la caput_fw-la &_o corpus_fw-la est_fw-la caput_fw-la est_fw-la filius_fw-la dei_fw-la vivi_fw-la unigenitus_fw-la corpus_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la 20._o etc._n etc._n all_o that_o can_v be_v say_v and_o aver_v of_o christ_n be_v his_o head_n and_o his_o body_n the_o head_n be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n the_o body_n be_v his_o church_n bone_n of_o his_o bone_n ecclesiae_fw-la and_o flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n for_o christ_n have_v two_o body_n the_o one_o natum_fw-la ex_fw-la virgine_fw-la and_o therefore_o natural_a the_o other_o redemptum_fw-la sanguine_fw-la and_o therefore_o mystical_a and_o the_o late_a be_v more_o dear_a unto_o he_o then_o the_o former_a for_o he_o whole_o bestow_v his_o natural_a body_n to_o redeem_v his_o mystical_a body_n 10._o the_o catholic_a then_o know_v this_o correspondency_n betwixt_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n believe_v all_o whole_o and_o without_o either_o choice_n or_o addition_n of_o his_o own_o which_o deliver_v the_o say_a church_n universal_o spread_v over_o the_o world_n do_v propose_v unto_o he_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v believe_v contain_v himself_o within_o that_o most_o sure_a and_o infallible_a prescription_n of_o tertullian_n nobis_fw-la verò_fw-la nihil_fw-la ex_fw-la nostro_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la licet_fw-la inducere_fw-la sed_fw-la nec_fw-la eligere_fw-la quod_fw-la aliquis_fw-la de_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la svo_fw-la induxerit_fw-la it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o we_o to_o innovate_v at_o our_o pleasure_n nor_o yet_o may_v i_o make_v choice_n of_o that_o which_o another_o man_n upon_o private_a fancy_n have_v add_v but_o as_o for_o the_o heretic_n non_fw-la sic_fw-la ille_fw-la non_fw-la sic_fw-la it_o go_v not_o so_o with_o he_o for_o be_v a_o heretic_n that_o 5._o be_v a_o chooser_n he_o according_a to_o his_o name_n and_o nature_n because_o he_o will_v not_o have_v his_o name_n for_o nought_o make_v choice_n of_o what_o he_o list_v to_o believe_v
use_v his_o own_o election_n sive_fw-la ad_fw-la prescript_n instituendas_fw-la sive_fw-la ad_fw-la suscipiendas_fw-la haereses_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v to_o be_v a_o author_n of_o heresy_n or_o a_o follower_n as_o tertullian_n speak_v in_o the_o place_n before_o cite_v and_o all_o this_o he_o do_v according_a to_o his_o own_o judgement_n and_o fancy_n ascribe_v little_a or_o rather_o nothing_o at_o all_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o any_o thing_n that_o mislike_v his_o own_o judgement_n so_o that_o in_o conclusion_n these_o two_o man_n be_v most_o opposite_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o 11._o the_o first_o clear_a knowledge_n that_o ever_o the_o church_n have_v of_o this_o peculiar_a and_o ecclesiastical_a appropriation_n of_o these_o two_o word_n catholic_a &_o heretic_n be_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n heretic_n inspirer_n of_o all_o truth_n as_o have_v be_v former_o note_v and_o to_o begin_v first_o with_o the_o last_o the_o very_a first_o intimation_n give_v of_o that_o odious_a and_o pestiferous_a appellation_n of_o heresy_n or_o heretic_n be_v by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o as_o namely_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o corinth_n there_o must_v be_v heresy_n that_o those_o who_o be_v approve_v may_v be_v manifest_v among_o you_o which_o manifestation_n tertull._n say_v be_v 9_o mean_v aswell_o of_o those_o tam_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o persecutionibꝰ_n steterint_fw-la quam_fw-la quiad_n haereses_fw-la exorbitaverint_fw-la who_o have_v remain_v constant_a in_o persecution_n as_o they_o who_o have_v not_o decline_v out_o of_o the_o right_a path_n to_o follow_v heresy_n so_o he_o second_o the_o same_o apostle_n in_o his_o 4._o epistle_n to_o titus_n write_v thus_o avoid_v a_o heretical_a man_n after_o one_o or_o two_o reprehension_n know_v that_o such_o a_o one_o be_v subvert_v and_o sin_v as_o damn_v by_o his_o own_o proper_a judgement_n id_fw-la non_fw-la tam_fw-la infirmitate_fw-la ac_fw-la ignorantia_fw-la quam_fw-la spontanea_fw-la malitia_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr obstinata_fw-la industria_fw-la peccat_fw-la for_o so_o i_o 11._o may_v well_o expound_v it_o that_o be_v he_o sin_v not_o so_o much_o of_o infirmity_n and_o ignorance_n as_o he_o do_v of_o voluntary_a malice_n and_o obstinate_a industry_n or_o else_o eligit_fw-la sibi_fw-la in_o quo_fw-la damnatur_fw-la as_o tertullian_n give_v the_o sense_n his_o own_o election_n make_v good_a his_o own_o damnation_n and_o as_o s._n paul_n inveigh_v thus_o against_o heresy_n 6._o &_o heretic_n so_o do_v s._n peter_n as_o you_o shall_v read_v 2._o pet._n 2._o brand_a they_o for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d damnable_a heresy_n and_o the_o teacher_n of_o they_o for_o such_o as_o bring_v upon_o themselves_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d swift_a damnation_n or_o as_o it_o be_v render_v in_o another_o place_n immediate_o follow_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ibidem_fw-la and_o their_o damnation_n sleep_v not_o can_v any_o thing_n be_v speak_v more_o terrible_a to_o forewarn_v we_o of_o heresy_n and_o heretic_n than_o this_o excellent_a therefore_o be_v the_o counsel_n 31_o of_o tertullian_n wish_v we_o to_o avoid_v a_o heretic_n post_fw-la unam_fw-la correptionem_fw-la non_fw-la post_fw-la disputationem_fw-la adeo_fw-la interdixit_fw-la disputationem_fw-la 16._o correptionem_fw-la designans_fw-la causam_fw-la haeretici_fw-la conveniendi_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la unam_fw-la scilicet_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la christianus_fw-la ne_fw-fr more_fw-mi christiani_n semel_fw-la &_o iterum_fw-la &_o sub_fw-la duobus_fw-la aut_fw-la tribus_fw-la testibus_fw-la castigandus_fw-la videretur_fw-la cum_fw-la ob_fw-la hoc_fw-la sit_fw-la castigandus_fw-la propter_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la cum_fw-la illo_fw-la disputandum_fw-la after_o one_o reprehension_n and_o not_o after_o a_o disputation_n for_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v therefore_o forbid_v disputation_n because_o the_o speak_n with_o a_o heretic_n shall_v be_v for_o his_o reprehension_n and_o this_o only_o once_o because_o he_o be_v no_o christian_a lest_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o christian_a he_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v chastise_v once_o and_o again_o and_o that_o by_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n when_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o be_v to_o be_v chastise_v because_o there_o be_v no_o disputation_n to_o be_v have_v with_o such_o a_o one_o 12._o and_o although_o the_o word_n heresy_n be_v use_v two_o or_o three_o time_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n where_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o 14._o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n be_v call_v heresy_n and_o though_o s._n paul_n himself_o speak_v out_o of_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o jew_n most_o willing_o undergo_v the_o imputation_n where_o christian_a religion_n be_v brand_v with_o the_o term_n of_o sect_n or_o heresy_n yet_o be_v not_o the_o word_n take_v in_o such_o a_o heinous_a signification_n here_o in_o these_o place_n as_o in_o the_o other_o place_n of_o the_o apostle_n before_o mention_v for_o that_o of_o no_o kind_n of_o sin_n or_o sinner_n do_v they_o ever_o pronounce_v so_o grievous_a a_o sentence_n as_o namely_o that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v flee_v from_o as_o subvert_v and_o damn_v by_o his_o own_o judgement_n that_o they_o bring_v in_o damnable_a heresy_n that_o they_o bring_v upon_o themselves_o swift_a damnation_n and_o that_o their_o damnation_n sleep_v not_o which_o they_o fear_v not_o to_o pronounce_v nay_o they_o bold_o pronounce_v of_o a_o heretical_a man_n they_o bring_v upon_o themselves_o swift_a damnation_n here_o be_v nothing_o but_o damnation_n and_o all_o to_o give_v we_o a_o terrible_a admonition_n to_o beware_v they_o and_o avoid_v they_o and_o thus_o much_o i_o think_v good_a to_o say_v of_o this_o dreadful_a name_n for_o stir_v up_o my_o former_a brethren_n of_o the_o ministry_n to_o beware_v thereof_o but_o much_o more_o to_o decline_v the_o cause_n and_o occasion_n of_o the_o same_o 13._o as_o for_o the_o word_n catholic_n it_o come_v from_o heaven_n and_o be_v first_o reveal_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o be_v all_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o common_a creed_n for_o be_v assemble_v together_o to_o compose_v a_o perfect_a platform_n of_o true_a and_o saving-beliefe_n and_o to_o keep_v out_o heresy_n while_o they_o disperse_v themselves_o abroad_o to_o sow_v the_o sacred_a seed_n of_o evangelicall_a verity_n they_o be_v at_o this_o time_n and_o for_o this_o purpose_n assemble_v and_o their_o tongue_n be_v the_o pen_n of_o a_o ready_a writer_n when_o they_o come_v unto_o that_o article_n which_o concern_v the_o church_n they_o by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o never-erring_a spirit_n lay_v down_o the_o form_n thus_o credo_fw-la in_o spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la sanctan_n ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n where_o they_o do_v not_o think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o say_v they_o believe_v the_o holy_a christian_a church_n but_o they_o think_v the_o word_n catholic_a to_o be_v more_o eminent_a significant_a and_o effectual_a for_o the_o purpose_n neither_o can_v this_o be_v do_v without_o the_o singular_a care_n providence_n &_o wisdom_n of_o that_o all-seing_a spirit_n that_o undoubted_o inspire_v they_o etc._n &_o guide_v they_o for_o as_o tertull._n observe_v that_o s._n paul_n forseeing_a that_o heresy_n will_v afterwards_o spring_v up_o in_o the_o church_n as_o the_o weed_n usual_o do_v among_o the_o pure_a and_o rank_a corn_n foretell_v and_o forewarn_v they_o to_o come_v yea_o point_v out_o as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o finger_n to_o some_o heresy_n particular_o even_o so_o the_o apostle_n foresee_v that_o all_o heresy_n be_v to_o shroud_v themselves_o under_o the_o name_n of_o christian_a church_n assembly_n and_o congregation_n they_o think_v it_o most_o convenient_a for_o preservation_n of_o unity_n and_o verity_n to_o set_v this_o remarkable_a stamp_n of_o catholic_n upon_o the_o church_n for_o the_o more_o manifest_a convince_a and_o detect_v of_o all_o heresy_n which_o badge_n or_o cognisance_n be_v once_o set_v upon_o the_o sleeve_n of_o the_o church_n impossible_a it_o be_v that_o any_o heretic_n that_o ever_o be_v be_v or_o hereafter_o shall_v be_v can_v ever_o fasten_v upon_o this_o title_n and_o since_o it_o be_v more_o than_o apparent_a that_o the_o genuine_a description_n of_o catholic_a require_v more_o particular_n and_o more_o easy_a to_o be_v discover_v then_o do_v the_o name_n of_o christian_a in_o general_a most_o pertinent_a if_o not_o necessary_a be_v the_o imposition_n of_o this_o name_n upon_o christ_n church_n for_o the_o better_a exclude_v and_o keep_v forth_o of_o all_o heretical_a and_o particular_a sectary_n whatsoever_o 14._o from_o these_o two_o fountain_n then_o of_o sacred_a scripture_n and_o common_a creed_n original_o flow_v the_o knowledge_n and_o use_n of_o these_o two_o word_n of_o catholic_n and_o heretic_n both_o of_o they_o come_v from_o heaven_n both_o be_v particular_o inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o breathe_v into_o the_o church_n for_o her_o better_a preservation_n as_o have_v be_v former_o note_v the_o very_a consideration_n whereof_o
aught_o effectual_o to_o move_v we_o to_o make_v great_a esteem_n of_o their_o knowledge_n to_o entertain_v they_o as_o we_o ought_v and_o that_o be_v high_o to_o reverence_v and_o sincere_o to_o affect_v the_o one_o since_o out_o of_o the_o confine_n of_o this_o there_o can_v be_v no_o salvation_n as_o also_o to_o detest_v and_o fly_v from_o the_o other_o as_o from_o a_o serpent_n yea_o as_o from_o satan_n that_o first_o seduce_v serpent_n since_o this_o bring_v with_o it_o assure_a damnation_n 15._o for_o these_o and_o the_o same_o cause_n the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n so_o much_o commend_v by_o his_o catholic_n majesty_n as_o that_o he_o refer_v himself_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n to_o their_o decision_n as_o soon_o as_o ever_o these_o word_n and_o their_o mystery_n be_v reveal_v in_o the_o church_n lest_o in_o time_n they_o shall_v be_v bury_v in_o oblivion_n do_v present_o with_o their_o pen_n advance_v the_o most_o high_a commendation_n of_o the_o one_o as_o the_o only_a ordinary_a high_a way_n to_o everlasting_a salvation_n as_o also_o by_o many_o detestation_n and_o execration_n depress_v the_o other_o as_o the_o very_a path_n to_o eternal_a perdition_n 16._o among_o which_o worthy_n and_o famous_a pillar_n of_o the_o church_n the_o ancient_a father_n pacianus_n so_o high_o commend_v by_o s._n hier._n for_o his_o holiness_n above_o 1200._o year_n ago_o write_v a_o learned_a epistle_n to_o one_o sempronianus_fw-la a_o novatian_a heretic_n of_o the_o excellency_n of_o this_o name_n catholic_a for_o that_o illust_n those_o heretic_n as_o we_o also_o of_o this_o day_n do_v make_v very_o little_a account_n of_o this_o name_n but_o the_o holy_a father_n describe_v at_o large_a how_o necessary_a it_o be_v for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o leave_v unto_o we_o this_o name_n or_o rather_o syr-name_n for_o distinguish_v all_o faithful_a christian_n from_o misbeliever_n his_o word_n be_v very_o effectual_a for_o this_o purpose_n ego_fw-la sortè_fw-la ingressus_fw-la populosam_fw-la urbem_fw-la hodie_fw-la say_v he_o cum_fw-la marcionitas_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o bechance_v enter_v this_o day_n into_o a_o populous_a city_n and_o find_v there_o some_o call_v marcionite_n some_o apollinarian_o some_o cataphrigian_o some_o novatian_n and_o other_o of_o like_a sect_n all_o call_n themselves_o christian_n i_o do_v not_o know_v by_o what_o syr-name_n i_o shall_v find_v cut_v the_o congregation_n of_o my_o people_n except_o by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n so_o he_o and_o then_o proceed_v further_o certè_fw-la non_fw-la ab_fw-la homine_fw-la mutuat●m_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la per_fw-la sempr._n tantae_fw-la saecula_fw-la non_fw-la cecidit_fw-la certain_o this_o name_n be_v never_o take_v or_o borrow_v of_o man_n that_o have_v not_o fall_v or_o decay_v for_o so_o many_o age_n and_o then_o he_o allege_v the_o authority_n of_o catholic_n antiquity_n and_o universal_a church_n &_o namely_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n cyprian_n in_o particular_a for_o the_o use_n of_o that_o name_n against_o all_o heresy_n whatsoever_o conclude_v thus_o quaere_fw-la ab_fw-la haeretico_fw-la nomine_fw-la noster_fw-la populus_fw-la hac_fw-la appellatione_fw-la dividitur_fw-la cum_fw-la catholicus_n nuncupatur_fw-la etc._n etc._n wherefore_o our_o people_n be_v distinguish_v by_o this_o appellation_n from_o all_o heretical_a name_n when_o it_o be_v call_v catholic_a and_o yet_o further_o he_o say_v christianus_n mihi_fw-la nomen_fw-la est_fw-la catholicus_n verò_fw-la cogneman_n i_o illud_fw-la nuncupat_fw-la istud_fw-la ostendit_fw-la hoc_fw-la prober_fw-la illo_fw-la significor_n christian_n be_v my_o name_n but_o catholic_a be_v my_o syrname_n the_o first_o do_v name_v i_o only_o the_o second_o do_v point_v i_o out_o by_o the_o name_n of_o christian_a i_o be_o fignify_v only_o but_o by_o the_o syrname_n of_o catholic_a i_o be_o try_v and_o examine_v whether_o i_o be_v a_o christion_n or_o no._n so_o he_o 17._o this_o be_v that_o high_a account_n and_o esteem_v wherein_o that_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n s._n pacianus_n hold_v the_o word_n catholic_a after_o that_o the_o christian_a church_n have_v appropriate_v &_o assume_v this_o distinctive_a appellation_n set_v it_o as_o a_o most_o certain_a badge_n or_o cognisance_n upon_o the_o breast_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_a and_o upon_o the_o sleeve_n of_o every_o member_n of_o this_o church_n in_o particular_a and_o the_o reason_n reassume_v in_o the_o conclusion_n be_v in_o effect_n this_o appellatio_fw-la catholici_fw-la congregat_fw-la homogenia_fw-la diss●pat_fw-la heterogenia_fw-la that_o be_v in_o plain_a term_n this_o name_n catholic_a make_v a_o conjunction_n unite_n her_o own_o and_o it_o note_v a_o disjunction_n separate_v all_o sectary_n from_o her_o society_n and_o here_o be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o solomon_n even_o the_o wisdom_n of_o almighty_a god_n 19_o discern_v betwixt_o the_o true_a mother_n and_o the_o false_a this_o be_v the_o true_a &_o natural_a mother_n of_o every_o child_n of_o the_o church_n she_o will_v admit_v no_o division_n of_o her_o child_n she_o will_v have_v all_o or_o none_o for_o catholic_a be_v her_o name_n but_o to_o leave_v s._n pacianus_n and_o to_o pass_v to_o other_o since_o that_o the_o scripture_n require_v that_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n every_o 13._o thing_n shall_v be_v establish_v where_o we_o may_v note_v by_o the_o way_n that_o if_o the_o testimony_n of_o two_o or_o three_o ordinary_a witness_n may_v stint_v the_o strife_n in_o matter_n of_o controversy_n and_o tend_v to_o reconciliation_n in_o foro_fw-la saeculi_fw-la how_o much_o more_o then_o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o extraordinary_a witness_n witness_v judge_n and_o judge_a witness_n great_a than_o all_o exception_n aught_o to_o compromise_n and_o final_o decide_v the_o question_n now_o in_o hand_n in_o foro_fw-la caeli_fw-la in_fw-la foro_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la 18._o these_o witness_n consent_v with_o pacianus_n in_o the_o premise_a point_n of_o catholic_a be_v all_o the_o ancient_a father_n which_o live_v either_o before_o or_o after_o he_o in_o the_o century_n of_o christian_a religion_n within_o the_o unity_n and_o bosom_n of_o their_o mother_n the_o catholic_a church_n as_o namely_o before_o he_o s._n cyprian_n who_o he_o express_o mention_v and_o before_o he_o again_o old_a tertullian_n one_o of_o the_o most_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n who_o s._n cyprian_n the_o martyr_n so_o high_o reverence_v and_o when_o he_o will_v read_v he_o he_o 26._o point_v he_o out_o thus_o dam_fw-la mihi_fw-la magistrum_fw-la and_o after_o these_o two_o s._n augustine_n who_o ascribe_v so_o much_o and_o that_o as_o he_o think_v worthy_o unto_o this_o name_n catholic_a as_o that_o he_o fear_v not_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v one_o special_a motive_n both_o to_o draw_v he_o to_o it_o and_o to_o hold_v he_o in_o the_o visible_a universal_a church_n of_o his_o day_n neither_o do_v this_o great_a doctor_n bare_o affirm_v it_o upon_o his_o word_n and_o credit_n which_o have_v be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o to_o have_v believe_v the_o same_o but_o he_o yield_v a_o substantial_a reason_n thereof_o in_o the_o word_n follow_v quod_fw-la non_fw-la sine_fw-la causa_fw-la inter_fw-la tam_fw-la varias_fw-la haereses_fw-la ista_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sola_fw-la obtinuit_fw-la which_o very_a name_n 4._o of_o catholic_a not_o without_o cause_n this_o only_a church_n have_v obtain_v among_o so_o many_o heresy_n as_o have_v spring_v up_o again_o the_o same_o father_n positive_o and_o bold_o affirm_v in_o another_o place_n that_o the_o word_n catholic_a be_v so_o appropriate_a to_o this_o church_n ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o creed_n give_v that_o name_n unto_o it_o as_o that_o no_o conventicle_n of_o heretic_n whatsoever_o can_v once_o fasten_v upon_o the_o name_n themselves_o or_o procure_v the_o same_o to_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o by_o other_o and_o hereupon_o he_o conclude_v that_o the_o very_a possession_n of_o the_o name_n and_o common_a opinion_n of_o man_n be_v a_o sufficient_a convince_a proof_n against_o all_o adversary_n that_o this_o church_n be_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n indeed_o 19_o hitherto_o s._n augustine_n now_o if_o we_o descend_v low_a to_o succeed_v age_n of_o the_o church_n i_o mean_v unto_o those_o father_n that_o live_v after_o s._n augustine_n his_o time_n we_o shall_v find_v such_o harmony_n in_o unity_n such_o uniform_a consent_n in_o judgement_n touch_v the_o true_a explication_n of_o this_o name_n catholic_n as_o also_o the_o very_a right_a explication_n of_o that_o unto_o the_o visible_a universal_a church_n of_o their_o day_n that_o we_o must_v hence_o necessary_o infer_v that_o one_o spirit_n breathe_v in_o all_o one_o &_o the_o same_o spirit_n direct_v all_o and_o here_o i_o may_v produce_v a_o whole_a cloud_n of_o witness_n to_o speak_v in_o the_o phrase_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o namely_o s._n damascen_n oecumenius_n theophilact_n for_o the_o greek_a 1._o p●lgentius_n s._n gregory_n the_o
so_o much_o as_o we_o hear_v on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o terrible_a horror_n of_o the_o say_a name_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o see_v the_o common_a and_o to_o much_o use_v familiaryty_n thereof_o in_o these_o our_o unhappy_a time_n late_a and_o worse_a day_n which_o be_v so_o replenish_v with_o all_o kind_n of_o sect_n and_o sectary_n as_o that_o each_o one_o common_o call_v the_o other_o heretic_n and_o that_o with_o as_o great_a facility_n and_o with_o as_o little_a regard_n as_o if_o the_o accustomable_a practice_n of_o call_v heretic_n have_v take_v away_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o real_a feel_n of_o a_o heretic_n or_o as_o though_o he_o call_v he_o good_a fellow_n or_o witty_a inventor_n of_o new_a opinion_n which_o among_o the_o sectary_n of_o our_o age_n be_v rather_o repute_v for_o a_o pleasant_a jest_n and_o ingenious_a commendation_n then_o for_o that_o which_o in_o sober_a sadness_n set_v all_o atheistical_a scoff_a and_o jest_n in_o matter_n of_o such_o moment_n a_o part_n it_o be_v to_o wit_n a_o terrible_a accusation_n and_o dreadful_a charge_n of_o a_o most_o high_a and_o capital_a crime_n commit_v against_o god_n his_o church_n his_o saviour_n and_o all_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o his_o own_o soul_n 28._o but_o alas_o who_o do_v not_o now_o adays_o delight_n and_o esteem_v himself_o the_o more_o for_o his_o sharpness_n of_o wit_n &_o subtle_a ingeny_n for_o invent_v find_v out_o devise_v frame_v new_a position_n new_a translation_n new_a interpretation_n and_o that_o coin_a &_o stamp_v in_o the_o shop_n of_o his_o own_o brain_n thereby_o of_o set_a purpose_n to_o impugn_v and_o of_o desperate_a malice_n to_o withstand_v some_o catholic_n point_n of_o ancient_a church_n doctrine_n and_o if_o you_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o must_v keep_v he_o to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v that_o to_o the_o son_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o have_v uniform_o receive_v from_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n that_o he_o must_v not_o remove_v ancient_a band_n in_o matter_n of_o belief_n for_o fear_n of_o a_o curse_n that_o he_o must_v reddere_fw-la depositum_fw-la as_o s._n paul_n charge_v timothy_n and_o that_o with_o a_o vehement_a 20._o asseveration_n and_o what_o be_v that_o reddere_fw-la depositum_fw-la that_o be_v as_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n excellent_o expound_v it_o quod_fw-la tibi_fw-la creditum_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la quod_fw-la à_fw-la te_fw-la inventum_fw-la quod_fw-la accepisti_fw-la non_fw-la quod_fw-la excogitasti_fw-la haereses_fw-la rem_fw-la non_fw-la ingenij_fw-la sed_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la non_fw-la usurpationis_fw-la privatae_fw-la sed_fw-la publicae_fw-la traditionis_fw-la rem_fw-la ad_fw-la te_fw-la perductam_fw-la non_fw-la a_o te_fw-la prolatam_fw-la in_fw-la qua_fw-la non_fw-la author_n esse_fw-la debes_fw-la sed_fw-la custos_fw-la non_fw-la institutor_fw-la sed_fw-la sectator_n non_fw-la ducens_fw-la sed_fw-la sequens_fw-la that_o which_o be_v commit_v unto_o thou_o not_o any_o thing_n invent_v of_o thou_o that_o which_o thou_o have_v receive_v not_o devise_v a_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n not_o of_o wit_n not_o of_o private_a usurpation_n but_o of_o public_a tradition_n a_o matter_n bring_v unto_o thou_o not_o bring_v forth_o of_o thou_o wherein_o thou_o must_v be_v no_o author_n but_o a_o keeper_n no_o master_n but_o a_o scholar_n no_o guider_n but_o a_o follower_n last_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o must_v content_v praf_n himself_o with_o be_v a_o relator_n only_o not_o presume_v to_o be_v a_o author_n otherwise_o his_o position_n will_v prove_v innovation_n private_a invention_n erroneous_a election_n and_o consequent_o heresy_n i_o say_v tell_v he_o all_o this_o and_o what_o more_o you_o can_v devise_v and_o he_o will_v laugh_v at_o you_o for_o your_o simplicity_n in_o go_v about_o to_o terrify_v he_o with_o such_o bug_n and_o in_o tie_v his_o spirit_n to_o any_o rule_n of_o church-authority_n since_o the_o wind_n blow_v where_o it_o list_v etc._n etc._n which_o he_o fanatical_o apply_v unto_o his_o spirit_n presume_v it_o to_o be_v inspire_v from_o above_o and_o with_o that_o spirit_n if_o you_o will_v believe_v he_o upon_o his_o bare_a word_n be_v he_o so_o inspire_v that_o he_o need_v no_o other_o direction_n no_o further_a instruction_n and_o this_o be_v all_o the_o 8._o account_n that_o he_o make_v of_o be_v a_o catholic_a or_o a_o choose_n heretic_n but_o reflect_v upon_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n which_o may_v true_o and_o only_o be_v call_v catholic_a i_o experimental_o find_v another_o kind_n of_o reckon_v make_v of_o both_o these_o word_n catholic_a and_o heretic_n most_o high_o esteem_v the_o one_o as_o have_v be_v former_o speak_v and_o fearful_o decline_v the_o other_o as_o the_o origin_n and_o offspring_n of_o all_o calamity_n 26._o and_o first_o i_o find_v in_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o their_o school_n they_o assign_v heresy_n for_o one_o of_o the_o three_o species_n 6._o or_o member_n of_o infidelity_n opposite_a to_o christian_a religion_n they_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v the_o worst_a &_o most_o heinous_a of_o all_o three_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o extreme_a and_o desperate_a malice_n thereof_o to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v in_o a_o degree_n of_o evil_a and_o sin_n worse_o and_o more_o damnable_a than_o either_o paganism_n or_o judaism_n not_o for_o that_o all_o heresy_n deny_v more_o part_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n then_o do_v the_o pagan_n or_o jew_n for_o in_o this_o the_o pagan_a i_o sin_v more_o than_o a_o jew_n and_o a_o jew_n common_o more_o than_o a_o heretic_n but_o because_o they_o do_v corrupt_a and_o impugn_v the_o catholic_a christian_a faith_n which_o once_o they_o receive_v and_o from_o which_o they_o be_v now_o wilful_o depart_v which_o imply_v more_o malice_n than_o can_v be_v ascribe_v to_o either_o jew_n or_o gentile_n that_o never_o receive_v the_o same_o in_o which_o respect_n their_o sin_n and_o damnation_n be_v more_o grievous_a say_v catholic_a doctor_n then_o be_v either_o of_o the_o other_o two_o whereupon_o be_v infer_v by_o s._n thomas_n and_o it_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n that_o a_o heretic_n be_v in_o worse_a state_n than_o a_o jew_n or_o gentile_a for_o the_o life_n to_o come_v 30._o again_o for_o further_a aggravation_n and_o exaggeration_n of_o the_o horror_n of_o this_o name_n and_o loud-crying_a sin_n thereby_o signify_v the_o catholic_a divine_n in_o a_o more_o particular_a explication_n do_v constant_o and_o with_o uniform_a consent_n aver_v that_o a_o heretic_n discredit_v or_o not_o believe_v as_o he_o shall_v any_o one_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n do_v loose_v his_o whole_a faith_n and_o habit_n thereof_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v assign_v by_o the_o school_n doctor_n for_o that_o the_o chief_a motive_n or_o formal_a reason_n why_o a_o man_n do_v cred●●di_fw-la believe_v any_o thing_n in_o christian_a religion_n be_v because_o it_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n and_o propound_v by_o the_o church_n without_o which_o church_n propound_v and_o approve_v nothing_o can_v be_v secure_o believe_v and_o therefore_o when_o a_o heretic_n in_o any_o one_o article_n discredit_v and_o detract_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o church_n which_o be_v necessary_a and_o primary_n condition_n in_o belief_n deny_v it_o thereby_o to_o be_v a_o infallible_a rule_n of_o belief_n in_o this_o one_o article_n he_o deny_v the_o same_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n as_o for_o example_n if_o a_o man_n shall_v ask_v a_o protestant_n why_o he_o believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o s._n matthews_n gospel_n to_o be_v s._n matthews_n gospel_n he_o can_v answer_v no_o otherwise_o but_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v the_o same_o unto_o we_o by_o the_o church_n which_o propound_v these_o book_n for_o scripture_n here_o then_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o church_n appertain_v to_o the_o formal_a reason_n or_o cause_n of_o belief_n as_o devyne_n do_v term_v it_o which_o if_o once_o it_o be_v deny_v or_o discredit_v in_o any_o one_o article_n as_o the_o protestant_n do_v when_o we_o allege_v it_o against_o they_o for_o purgatory_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a sacrifice_n invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o the_o like_a then_o can_v it_o not_o hold_v in_o the_o former_a about_o scripture_n or_o any_o other_o why_o article_n and_o consequent_o heretic_n have_v no_o divyne_a faith_n at_o all_o about_o scripture_n or_o any_o other_o article_n but_o be_v mere_a infidel_n in_o all_o and_o consequent_o shall_v be_v damn_v say_v they_o not_o only_o as_o choose_v heretic_n believe_v one_o thing_n and_o reject_v the_o other_o but_o as_o unbelieved_n infidel_n devoid_a of_o all_o faith_n which_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v a_o very_a terrible_a commination_n and_o fearful_a distriction_n and_o yet_o do_v i_o see_v it_o substantial_o ground_v and_o so_o orderly_o deduce_v as_o that_o i_o must_v ingenuous_o confess_v it_o so_o convince_a my_o understanding_n and_o
inform_v my_o judgement_n that_o i_o can_v not_o do_v otherwise_o then_o give_v my_o full_a consent_n unto_o it_o nor_o do_v i_o possible_o see_v how_o the_o same_o may_v be_v any_o way_n deny_v or_o probable_o with_o any_o colour_n of_o reason_n impugn_a and_o be_v there_o not_o cause_n now_o that_o i_o shall_v look_v about_o i_o examine_v the_o ground_n whereupon_o i_o stand_v serious_o debate_v with_o myself_o of_o my_o late_a resolution_n and_o change_v make_v in_o religion_n weigh_v &_o ponder_v all_o thing_n with_o mature_a deliberation_n and_o serious_a meditation_n 31._o wherefore_o retire_v myself_o to_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n and_o bless_a father_n which_o according_a to_o vincentius_n direction_n i_o have_v ever_o resolve_v upon_o for_o the_o infallible_a rule_n and_o canon_n of_o my_o faith_n to_o see_v what_o they_o say_v in_o this_o matter_n since_o that_o other_o foundation_n they_o this_o can_v no_o man_n lay_v i_o find_v the_o same_o severity_n in_o their_o assertion_n &_o judgment_n which_o argue_v that_o the_o school_n doctor_n have_v original_o draw_v the_o matter_n of_o their_o doctrine_n from_o the_o most_o pure_a fountain_n 32._o and_o first_o i_o find_v that_o the_o say_v heretic_n and_o heresy_n be_v foretell_v and_o prophesy_v of_o by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n as_o namely_o that_o they_o shall_v enter_v into_o the_o church_n immediate_o after_o christ_n time_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o so_o that_o they_o shall_v continue_v from_o time_n to_o time_n as_o matth._n 24._o 5._o joan._n 5._o 44._o 1._o cor._n 11._o 19_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 1._o 2._o 3._o 2._o tim._n 2._o 17._o 18._o 2._o pet._n 1._o 2._o 1._o joan._n 2._o 18._o 19_o and_o elsewhere_o throughout_o the_o whole_a volume_n of_o god_n book_n all_o which_o as_o large_a commentary_n discover_v unto_o we_o the_o nature_n and_o condition_n of_o heresy_n and_o heretic_n but_o i_o will_v confine_v myself_o within_o short_a &_o straight_a bound_n and_o at_o this_o time_n i_o will_v especial_o ponder_v upon_o these_o three_o ensue_a place_n namely_o matth._n 7._o 15._o 16._o 3._o ●it_n 10._o and_o 11._o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n jude_n almost_o throughout_o the_o whole_a epistle_n 33._o and_o first_o he_o that_o speak_v as_o never_o man_n speak_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o soul_n best_a physician_n that_o ever_o be_v give_v we_o both_o a_o serious_a admonition_n and_o a_o perspicuous_a 16._o description_n of_o heretic_n attendite_fw-la à_fw-la f●lsis_fw-la prophetis_fw-la etc._n etc._n beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n which_o come_v unto_o you_o in_o sheep_n clothing_n but_o inward_o they_o be_v raven_a wolf_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o by_o their_o fruit_n beware_v there_o be_v the_o admonition_n of_o false_a prophet_n there_o be_v the_o deception_n and_o circumuention_n which_o come_v unto_o you_o in_o sheep_n clothing_n there_o be_v their_o fraudulent_a hypocrisy_n but_o inward_o they_o be_v raven_a wolf_n there_o be_v their_o violent_a cruelty_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o by_o their_o frutte_n saviour_n there_o be_v a_o manifest_a discovery_n of_o their_o impiety_n again_o beware_v that_o be_v take_v heed_n look_v about_o you_o there_o be_v imminent_a peril_n and_o hazard_v of_o your_o soul_n hang_v over_o your_o head_n of_o false_a prophet_n false_a deceaver_n false_a apostle_n antichrist_n heretic_n which_o come_v unto_o you_o in_o sheep_n clothing_n pretend_v outward_o to_o be_v angel_n of_o light_n but_o inward_o they_o be_v raven_a wolf_n messenger_n of_o satan_n and_o spirit_n of_o darkness_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o by_o their_o fruit_n if_o not_o by_o their_o word_n yet_o by_o their_o work_n if_o not_o by_o their_o say_n yet_o by_o their_o meaning_n last_o beware_v never_o be_v there_o any_o more_o need_n of_o circumspection_n of_o false_a prophet_n i_o point_v you_o to_o the_o poison_n that_o come_v from_o the_o person_n which_o come_v unto_o you_o in_o sheep_n clothing_n have_v nothing_o in_o their_o mouth_n but_o euangelium_fw-la christi_fw-la euangelium_fw-la christi_fw-la the_o pure_a gospel_n of_o christ_n the_o pure_a gospel_n of_o christ_n but_o inward_o they_o be_v raven_a wolf_n corrupter_n of_o his_o gospel_n and_o soule-quellers_a devour_v the_o innocent_a sheep_n of_o christ_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o by_o their_o fruit_n for_o the_o liberty_n of_o their_o gospel_n shall_v argue_v to_o their_o face_n the_o impiety_n &_o impurity_n of_o their_o heart_n 34._o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n be_v excellent_o expound_v 4._o both_o by_o tertullian_n and_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n and_o first_o what_o be_v this_o sheep_n clothing_n say_v tertull._n but_o the_o extrinsecall_a name_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o what_o be_v these_o raven_a wolf_n but_o deceitful_a 36._o gloss_n and_o spirit_n inwardl_o lurk_v and_o infest_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v these_o false_a prophet_n but_o false_a preacher_n who_o be_v these_o false_a apostle_n but_o adulterous_a euangelizator_n who_o be_v these_o antichrist_n now_o and_o always_o but_o rebel_n against_o christ_n hurt_v and_o persecute_v the_o church_n with_o the_o secret_a impiety_n of_o their_o heresy_n asmuch_o as_n antichrist_n shall_v then_o do_v with_o his_o open_a cruelty_n and_o tyranny_n so_o he_o 35._o second_o vincentius_n go_v further_a and_o though_o he_o live_v twelve_o hundred_o year_n ago_o yet_o speak_v he_o so_o particular_o to_o this_o point_n of_o unmask_v heresy_n &_o heretic_n as_o if_o he_o have_v live_v in_o the_o very_a day_n of_o luther_n calvin_n and_o the_o protestant_n apostasy_n which_o enforce_v i_o upon_o a_o often_o &_o scrious_a meditation_n to_o conclude_v that_o his_o spirit_n be_v inspire_v and_o his_o pen_n guide_v by_o the_o immediate_a hand_n &_o finger_n of_o god_n let_v we_o hear_v he_o then_o speak_v &_o interpret_v what_o be_v this_o sheep_n clothing_n say_v he_o but_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n who_o be_v these_o raven_a wolf_n but_o the_o cruel_a virulent_a &_o violent_a interpretation_n of_o heretic_n who_o always_o infest_v the_o fold_n of_o the_o church_n and_o tear_v in_o piece_n the_o flock_n of_o christ_n by_o all_o mean_n that_o possible_o they_o can_v but_o that_o they_o may_v deceitful_o steal_v upon_o theunwary_a sheep_n they_o put_v of_o their_o wolwish_a shape_n continue_v in_o their_o wolvish_a cruelty_n and_o they_o wrap_v and_o cover_v themselves_o with_o sentence_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o it_o be_v with_o certain_a fleece_n that_o when_o any_o man_n shall_v perceive_v the_o softness_n of_o their_o will_v he_o may_v not_o fear_v the_o sharpness_n of_o their_o tooth_n cite_v but_o what_o say_v our_o saviour_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o by_o their_o fruit_n that_o be_v when_o they_o begin_v not_o only_o to_o bring_v but_o also_o to_o expound_v the_o place_n of_o scripture_n nor_o yet_o to_o brag_v of_o they_o only_o but_o further_o to_o interpret_v they_o then_o their_o bitterness_n than_o their_o sharpness_n than_o their_o madness_n be_v perceyve_v then_o their_o new_a poison_n shall_v be_v vent_v forth_o then_o their_o profane_a novelty_n shall_v be_v detect_v then_o shall_v thou_o see_v the_o hedge_n &_o fence_v to_o be_v cut_v and_o break_v down_o then_o shall_v thou_o see_v the_o ancient_a mere_n and_o bound_n of_o the_o father_n to_o be_v translate_v and_o remove_v then_o catholic_a faith_n shall_v be_v violate_v then_o ecclesiastical_a doctrine_n annihilate_v and_o destroy_v hither_o to_o my_o author_n 36._o and_o can_v any_o thing_n be_v speak_v more_o effectual_o or_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o man_n or_o angel_n can_v interpret_v this_o place_n more_o true_o be_v not_o all_o heretic_n here_o unmask_v be_v not_o the_o protestant_n palpable_o discover_v cover_v their_o heretical_a face_n with_o the_o vizard_n of_o scripture_n when_o otherwise_o they_o dare_v not_o appear_v in_o their_o wolvish_a and_o thievish_a shape_n if_o this_o be_v not_o so_o or_o that_o i_o wrong_v they_o in_o aught_o nay_o if_o they_o be_v not_o guilty_a in_o their_o own_o conscience_n of_o much_o more_o than_o i_o can_v charge_v they_o withal_o let_v the_o just_a doom_n of_o heaven_n revenge_v it_o upon_o my_o soul_n and_o let_v i_o never_o see_v the_o face_n of_o god_n haud_fw-la ignotaloquor_fw-la what_o i_o speak_v i_o speak_v upon_o long_a practice_n and_o experience_n which_o i_o have_v have_v among_o they_o and_o if_o this_o be_v so_o then_o be_v they_o of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o false_a prophet_n concern_v who_o our_o saviour_n give_v we_o admonition_n here_o beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n which_o come_v to_o you_o in_o sheep_n clothing_n but_o inward_o they_o be_v raven_a wolf_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o by_o their_o fruit_n etc._n etc._n why_o but_o the_o protestant_n will_v plead_v in_o general_n that_o they_o have_v scripture_n to_o confirm_v every_o assertion_n of_o their_o
religion_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v in_o general_a that_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o heretic_n have_v their_o scripture_n as_o well_o as_o they_o as_o many_o and_o more_o than_o they_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v sheep_n clothing_n belong_v not_o to_o wolf_n nor_o scripture_n to_o they_o their_o possession_n of_o they_o be_v mere_a intrusion_n into_o they_o &_o therefore_o according_a to_o that_o excellent_a prescription_n of_o tertullian_n first_o they_o shall_v prove_v their_o right_n of_o possession_n of_o they_o before_o they_o so_o bold_o adventure_v upon_o the_o interpretation_n of_o they_o which_o since_o they_o can_v never_o yet_o do_v it_o be_v apparent_a and_o out_o of_o question_n that_o they_o have_v no_o more_o right_a unto_o the_o scripture_n than_o the_o devil_n himself_o and_o all_o former_a heretic_n have_v have_v unto_o they_o 37._o if_o beside_o the_o scripture_n they_o plead_v the_o spirit_n for_o this_o be_v their_o other_o ground_n and_o these_o two_o be_v all_o the_o ground_n refute_v that_o ever_o i_o can_v perceyve_v they_o have_v for_o their_o protestanticall_a religion_n i_o answer_v this_o spirit_n be_v a_o spirit_n of_o private_a interpretation_n their_o own_o proper_a invention_n and_o election_n it_o be_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o breathe_v these_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o devil_n &_o the_o spirit_n of_o all_o their_o grandprogenitor_n ancient_a heretic_n and_o now_o to_o cut_v of_o with_o one_o blow_n the_o head_n of_o all_o pryvate_a spirit_n let_v s._n bernard_n himself_o speak_v for_o i_o and_o strike_v for_o i_o nonnulli_fw-la adesse_fw-la putant_fw-la spiritum_fw-la cùmnon_fw-la adest_fw-la suumque_fw-la sensum_fw-la prosensu_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sequuntur_fw-la deviante_n many_o think_v they_o have_v the_o spirit_n when_o they_o cant._n have_v it_o not_o and_o fall_v into_o error_n follow_v their_o own_o sense_n for_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n dare_v any_o man_n hereafter_o vaunt_v of_o his_o private_a spirit_n all_o this_o and_o much_o more_o be_v imply_v in_o the_o heavenly_a admonition_n of_o our_o saviour_n beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n and_o which_o be_v my_o first_o place_n of_o scripture_n against_o heretic_n i_o come_v to_o the_o second_o which_o follow_v thus_o 38._o the_o apostle_n s_o paul_n that_o trumpet_n of_o the_o apostle_n preacher_n of_o the_o world_n and_o discloser_n of_o heavenly_a mystery_n thunder_v out_o a_o terrible_a commination_n against_o a_o heretic_n whereby_o he_o insinuate_v to_o leave_v a_o premonition_n to_o all_o succeed_a posterity_n to_o be_v ware_n of_o heresy_n and_o albeit_o i_o have_v touch_v the_o place_n somewhat_o in_o the_o former_a consideration_n in_o disclose_v the_o nature_n of_o heresy_n yet_o here_o i_o must_v return_v to_o the_o same_o again_o for_o better_a lay_v forth_o the_o miserable_a effect_n thereof_o and_o the_o care_n the_o say_a apostle_n have_v to_o have_v it_o eschew_v avoid_v say_v he_o a_o heretical_a 11_o man_n after_o the_o first_o or_o second_o reprehension_n know_v that_o he_o that_o be_v such_o a_o one_o be_v pervert_v and_o sin_v as_o damn_v by_o his_o own_o judgement_n heretic_n upon_o which_o place_n s._n hierome_n write_v thus_o haeretici_fw-la sententiam_fw-la in_o seipsos_fw-la ferunt_fw-la svo_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la recedenies_fw-la quae_fw-la recessio_fw-la propriae_fw-la conscientiae_fw-la videtur_fw-la esse_fw-la damnatio_fw-la heretic_n give_v sentence_n upon_o themselves_o and_o be_v damn_v upon_o their_o own_o judgement_n for_o that_o they_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n even_o out_o of_o their_o own_o self_n will_v and_o this_o departure_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o damnation_n of_o their_o own_o conscience_n express_o mention_v by_o s._n paul_n so_o s._n hierome_n and_o can_v there_o be_v any_o thing_n more_o terrible_a or_o dreadful_a than_o this_o again_o avoid_v a_o heretic_n propter_fw-la periculum_fw-la propter_fw-la consortium_fw-la propter_fw-la 17._o poenam_fw-la so_o s._n thomas_n upon_o this_o place_n first_o avoid_v they_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o peril_n of_o infection_n serma_fw-la enim_fw-la illorum_fw-la serpit_fw-la ut_fw-la cancer_n second_o avoid_v they_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n that_o you_o be_v not_o wrap_v and_o entangle_v in_o their_o sin_n while_o you_o seem_v by_o your_o familiarity_n with_o they_o to_o consent_v unto_o the_o same_o last_o avoid_v they_o propter_fw-la poenam_fw-la even_o for_o fear_n of_o the_o punishment_n of_o condemnation_n which_o hang_v over_o their_o head_n and_o yet_o moneatur_fw-la let_v he_o be_v admonish_v to_o see_v whether_o he_o will_v amend_v if_o he_o amend_v not_o after_o once_o or_o twice_o admonition_n avoid_v he_o si_fw-la curari_fw-la poterit_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la vitandus_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la dimittend_v we_o est_fw-la if_o he_o can_v be_v heal_v of_o his_o heresy_n he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v avoid_v if_o he_o can_v be_v cure_v he_o be_v to_o be_v shun_v hitherto_o s._n thomas_n 39_o my_o three_o place_n be_v out_o of_o s._n jude_n contain_v a_o very_a dreadful_a description_n of_o heretic_n yea_o so_o terrible_a that_o the_o very_a consideration_n thereof_o be_v able_a to_o make_v a_o man_n to_o treamble_n lest_o he_o shall_v be_v any_o way_n entangle_v and_o infect_v with_o this_o fearful_a sin_n of_o heresy_n either_o in_o be_v a_o heretic_n himself_o obstinate_a and_o malicious_a or_o in_o believe_v they_o as_o be_v seduce_v by_o they_o for_o after_o the_o apostle_n have_v premise_v the_o salutation_n together_o with_o the_o motive_n of_o his_o epistle_n which_o be_v to_o beseech_v they_o supercertare_fw-la semel_fw-la iraditae_fw-la sanctis_fw-la fidei_fw-la to_o stand_v fast_o and_o fight_v for_o the_o faith_n once_o deliver_v unto_o the_o saint_n which_o be_v the_o first_o christian_n present_o he_o give_v a_o most_o serious_a warning_n to_o all_o sort_n of_o christian_n of_o the_o approach_n and_o intrusion_n of_o heretic_n subintroierunt_fw-la enim_fw-la quidam_fw-la homines_fw-la juda●_n etc._n etc._n there_o have_v creep_v in_o certain_a man_n say_v he_o prescribe_v or_o prepare_v from_o the_o begin_n unto_o this_o terrible_a judgement_n wicked_a man_n who_o have_v turn_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n into_o wantonness_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o he_o thunder_v out_o a_o terrible_a commination_n against_o they_o sany_v woe_n be_v unto_o they_o that_o have_v go_v in_o the_o way_n of_o cain_n and_o have_v for_o reward_v pour_v out_o themselves_o with_o the_o error_n of_o balaam_n and_o have_v perish_v in_o the_o contradiction_n of_o chore._n so_o he_o and_o that_o this_o contradiction_n of_o chore_n against_o moses_n &_o aaron_n for_o which_o he_o &_o his_o conspirator_n be_v by_o god_n just_a wrath_n swallow_v heretic_n quick_a up_o into_o hell_n the_o earth_n open_v her_o mouth_n &_o devour_v they_o represent_v the_o contradiction_n of_o all_o heretic_n against_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o governor_n thereof_o no_o man_n that_o have_v any_o insight_n into_o devinity_n can_v deny_v and_o therefore_o our_o apostle_n s._n jude_n who_o allude_v and_o compare_v betwixt_o they_o denounce_v god_n vengeance_n yet_o further_o against_o they_o quibus_fw-la procella_fw-la tenebrarum_fw-la seruata_fw-la est_fw-la in_o aternum_fw-la for_o who_o a_o tempest_n of_o darkness_n or_o of_o torment_n in_o darkness_n be_v reserve_v for_o all_o eternity_n and_o this_o be_v so_o will_v any_o one_o call_v another_o heretic_n in_o jest_n or_o be_v there_o any_o cry_v i_o so_o dreadful_a as_o this_o 40._o but_o if_o we_o pass_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o scripture_n themselves_o unto_o the_o succeed_a primitive_a church_n and_o withal_o hold_v their_o judgement_n sense_n and_o feeling_n concern_v heresy_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o all_o of_o they_o without_o exception_n of_o any_o one_o have_v this_o very_a spirit_n of_o detest_a anathematise_v fly_a and_o avoid_v heretic_n above_o all_o other_o sinner_n and_o malefactor_n upon_o earth_n yea_o whereas_o towards_o other_o never_o so_o great_a greievous_a and_o heyncus_fw-la offender_n we_o be_v exhort_v will_v and_o join_v to_o be_v benign_a sweet_a meek_a compassionate_a and_o the_o like_a father_n the_o clean_a contrary_n be_v counsel_v unto_o we_o against_o heretic_n to_o wit_n not_o to_o salute_v they_o not_o to_o eat_v or_o drink_v with_o they_o not_o to_o receive_v they_o into_o our_o house_n not_o to_o converse_v with_o they_o but_o to_o fly_v they_o abhor_v they_o detest_v and_o avoid_v they_o as_o pest_n and_o plague_n and_o poison_a serpent_n infect_v we_o with_o the_o invenomed_a poison_n of_o hell_n as_o damn_a soul_n already_o upon_o earth_n damn_v by_o the_o guilt_n of_o their_o own_o conscience_n and_o by_o the_o irrevokable_a 11._o sentence_n of_o divine_a justice_n as_o before_o we_o have_v signify_v and_o that_o which_o be_v most_o worthy_a our_o observation_n such_o servant_n of_o god_n as_o be_v otherwise_o
ignorant_a &_o unlearned_a yet_o be_v it_o the_o only_a rule_n and_o canon_n of_o faith_n unto_o way_n the_o skilful_a and_o learned_a and_o that_o whereas_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v perfect_a and_o be_v of_o itself_o alone_o sufficient_a enough_o for_o all_o point_n what_o need_v the_o authority_n of_o ecclesiastical_a interpretation_n to_o be_v add_v unto_o this_o canon_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v and_o first_o this_o way_n we_o now_o speak_v of_o must_v be_v a_o way_n for_o all_o semita_fw-la via_fw-la &_o via_fw-la sancta_fw-la a_o path_n a_o way_n &_o holy_a way_n yea_o such_o a_o way_n if_o we_o believe_v almighty_a god_n speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o isaiah_n stulti_fw-la non_fw-la errent_fw-la per_fw-la eam_fw-la the_o most_o ignorant_a and_o unlearned_a can_v mistake_v it_o for_o that_o christ_n the_o way_n of_o all_o have_v leave_v this_o way_n unto_o all_o &_o that_o after_o 8._o his_o incarnation_n &_o passion_n for_o to_o that_o time_n the_o prophet_n isaiah_n allude_v &_o therefore_o the_o scripture_n exclude_v the_o ignorant_a for_o want_v of_o tongue_n and_o other_o learning_n &_o the_o great_a part_n of_o it_o be_v write_v before_o the_o say_a christ_n incarnation_n and_o passion_n can_v be_v this_o way_n second_o i_o answer_v that_o as_o the_o scripture_n alone_o can_v be_v the_o way_n unto_o the_o unlearned_a no_o more_o can_v it_o be_v the_o rule_n unto_o the_o learned_a for_o that_o not_o only_a fool_n but_o such_o as_o think_v themselves_o both_o learned_a and_o wise_a have_v err_v by_o that_o way_n of_o scripture_n alone_o and_o their_o private_a spirit_n to_o help_v they_o and_o hereof_o we_o have_v as_o many_o lively_a testimony_n and_o example_n as_o there_o have_v be_v learned_a heretic_n in_o the_o church_n who_o think_v themselves_o wise_a and_o learned_a and_o yet_o pretend_v scripture_n have_v run_v awry_o so_o dangerous_a a_o way_n be_v this_o way_n of_o the_o scripture_n without_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n to_o walk_v in_o three_o and_o last_o touch_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o holy_a canon_n without_o any_o addition_n of_o ecclesiastical_a interpretation_n i_o answer_v this_o objection_n which_o be_v the_o main_a position_n and_o foundation_n for_o all_o the_o protestant_n heresy_n at_o this_o day_n be_v as_o ancient_a as_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o it_o be_v propose_v by_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n and_o answer_v thus_o to_o sacred_a canon_n say_v he_o 2._o the_o ecclesiastical_a interpretation_n must_v be_v add_v because_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o scripture_n sublimity_n all_o man_n expound_v it_o not_o in_o one_o &_o the_o self_n same_o sense_n but_o this_o man_n &_o that_o man_n do_v diverse_o interpret_v the_o self_n same_o place_n of_o scripture_n that_o in_o a_o manner_n how_o many_o man_n there_o be_v so_o many_o sense_n may_v be_v wrest_v from_o it_o for_o novatian_n expound_v scripture_n one_o way_n photinus_n sabellius_n donatus_n arius_n another_o way_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o manifold_a turn_n and_o wind_n of_o several_a error_n and_o heresy_n it_o be_v very_o needful_a that_o the_o line_n of_o prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a interpretation_n be_v direct_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o ecclesiastical_a and_o catholic_a interpretation_n hitherto_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n 54._o and_o what_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v all_o our_o material_a contention_n with_o the_o sectary_n and_o their_o own_o capital_a dissension_n among_o themselves_o fall_v by_o the_o ear_n and_o damn_v each_o other_o to_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n let_v they_o pretend_v never_o so_o great_a brotherhood_n to_o cozen_v the_o world_n but_o about_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o true_a sense_n thereof_o to_o wit_n which_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v into_o canon_n and_o how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v interpret_v according_a to_o the_o intent_n and_o purpose_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n wherein_o all_o heretic_n have_v upon_o their_o own_o wilful_a election_n run_v out_o of_o the_o way_n as_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v continual_o charge_n they_o scripture_n pugnantes_fw-la as_o they_o complain_v contra_fw-la scripturas_fw-la they_o abuse_v god_n word_n 9_o against_o himself_o and_o scripture_n bonis_fw-la non_fw-la bene_fw-la utentes_fw-la the_o scripture_n be_v with_o they_o as_o a_o sword_n in_o a_o mad_a man_n hand_n they_o turn_v it_o against_o themselves_o make_v that_o unto_o they_o a_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n which_o be_v give_v they_o by_o god_n to_o become_v a_o savour_n of_o life_n unto_o life_n as_o s._n paul_n profess_v himself_o and_o all_o true_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o 16._o be_v for_o do_v not_o heretic_n receive_v some_o scripture_n &_o reject_v other_o and_o those_o that_o they_o do_v receive_v do_v they_o not_o turn_v they_o and_o wind_v they_o add_v to_o they_o &_o detract_v from_o they_o of_o purpose_n to_o pervert_v they_o for_o their_o purpose_n do_v they_o not_o expound_v they_o according_a to_o their_o own_o fancy_n &_o brain_n 17._o this_o be_v tertullian_n his_o complaint_n against_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n above_o fourteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o yet_o more_o sully_v to_o cur_n point_n in_o hand_n the_o same_o father_n show_v that_o it_o be_v but_o lose_a labour_n and_o vexation_n of_o mind_n to_o enter_v into_o conflict_n with_o a_o heretic_n by_o scripture_n say_v congressio_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la cum_fw-la haereticis_fw-la nihil_fw-la preficiat_a nisi_fw-la planè_fw-la ut_fw-la ibidem_fw-la aut_fw-la stomachi_fw-la quis_fw-la ineat_fw-la eu●●sicuem_fw-la aut_fw-la cerebri_fw-la the_o conflict_n about_o scripture_n with_o a_o herericke_a serve_v to_o no_o other_o purpose_n unless_o it_o be_v to_o overturn_v a_o man_n stomach_n or_o his_o brain_n again_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n he_o demand_v quid_fw-la premovebis_fw-la exercitatissmè_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la cum_fw-la si_fw-la quid_fw-la descnderis_fw-la negetur_fw-la si_fw-la ibidem_fw-la quidnegaveris_fw-la desendetur_fw-la &_o tu_fw-la quidem_fw-la nihil_fw-la perdis_fw-la nisi_fw-la vocem_fw-la in_o contentione_n nihil_fw-la consequeris_fw-la nisi_fw-la bilem_fw-la de_fw-la blasphematione_fw-la what_o shall_v thou_o gain_v albeit_o thou_o be_v most_o ready_a and_o expert_a in_o scripture_n the_o scripture_n for_o so_o much_o as_o if_o thou_o defend_v any_o thing_n it_o will_v be_v deny_v and_o if_o thou_o deny_v any_o thing_n it_o will_v be_v affirm_v and_o thou_o true_o for_o thy_o part_n lees_a nothing_o but_o spend_v thy_o voice_n in_o contention_n and_o shall_v gain_v nothing_o but_o choler_n by_o his_o blaspheme_n and_o then_o afterwards_o he_o flat_o conclude_v again_o against_o they_o wherefore_o say_v he_o there_o be_v no_o appeal_n to_o the_o scripture_n neither_o be_v the_o 20._o combat_n to_o be_v place_v in_o they_o wherein_o there_o be_v either_o no_o victory_n at_o all_o or_o very_o uncertain_a or_o at_o least_o wise_a not_o any_o certain_a can_v be_v hope_v for_o frgo_fw-la non_fw-la ad_fw-la scripturas_fw-la provecandum_fw-la est_fw-la nec_fw-la in_o his_o constituendum_fw-la certamen_fw-la in_fw-la quibus_fw-la aut_fw-la nulla_fw-la aut_fw-la incerta_fw-la aut_fw-la parùm_fw-la certa_fw-la est_fw-la victoria_fw-la so_o he_o 55._o this_o be_v tertullian_n his_o judgement_n touch_v scripture_n cite_v by_o the_o heretic_n in_o his_o time_n and_o do_v not_o this_o prescription_n serve_v against_o the_o sectary_n of_o our_o day_n well_o then_o i_o may_v conclude_v with_o tertullian_n his_o sense_n that_o this_o way_n of_o remit_v each_o man_n and_o woman_n to_o only_a scripture_n for_o certification_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o that_o promiscuous_o without_o a_o interpreter_n can_v be_v no_o certain_a or_o possible_a way_n evident_a rule_n or_o canon_n of_o faith_n now_o if_o the_o heretic_n be_v thus_o press_v &_o follow_v upon_o that_o his_o ground_n of_o scripture_n alone_o be_v enforce_v for_o avoid_v of_o all_o inconvenience_n and_o absurdity_n to_o adjoine_v and_o admit_v a_o interpreter_n then_o the_o question_n plain_o be_v who_o this_o interpreter_n shall_v be_v and_o of_o what_o faction_n in_o religion_n for_o of_o what_o sect_n soever_o he_o be_v to_o that_o side_n will_v he_o wrest_v and_o draw_v the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n et_fw-la tunc_fw-la say_v tertullian_n tantùm_fw-la 17._o veritati_fw-la obstrepit_fw-la adulter_fw-la sensus_fw-la quantùm_fw-la est_fw-la corruptor_n stylus_fw-la and_o then_o will_v a_o adulterous_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o much_o brabble_n against_o the_o truth_n as_o he_o that_o corrupt_v the_o text_n itself_o whereof_o he_o allege_v this_o reason_n for_o it_o holy_a writ_n be_v so_o fruitful_a to_o serve_v for_o each_o matter_n and_o point_n that_o come_v in_o question_n as_o nothing_o seem_v to_o a_o heretic_n so_o vain_a if_o it_o please_v his_o fancy_n but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v prove_v from_o thence_o neither_o do_v i_o hazard_v aught_o to_o say_v that_o the_o very_a scripture_n themselves_o be_v
great_a doubt_n that_o then_o arise_v in_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n whether_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o old_a law_n of_o moses_n shall_v be_v join_v necessary_a with_o the_o new_a law_n of_o christ_n and_o because_o they_o will_v leave_v a_o pattern_n for_o all_o succeed_a age_n to_o follow_v they_o determine_v the_o matter_n and_o themselves_o i_o mean_v the_o apostle_n and_o prelate_n of_o that_o first_o age_n decide_v the_o doubt_n by_o those_o high_a word_n of_o authority_n take_v from_o the_o foresay_a commission_n of_o our_o saviour_n visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritui_fw-la santo_n 28._o &_o nobis_fw-la it_o seem_v good_a unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o we_o for_o the_o church_n and_o the_o true_a spirit_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n go_v inseparable_o 20._o together_o in_o regard_n of_o christ_n his_o promise_n make_v unto_o the_o church_n so_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n ever_o keep_v his_o residence_n in_o she_o guide_v she_o govern_v she_o direct_v she_o and_o sit_v as_o precedent_n in_o all_o her_o consultation_n and_o assembly_n and_o therefore_o this_o umpiring_a and_o determine_v form_n of_o speech_n have_v ever_o since_o be_v use_v in_o the_o lawful_a succession_n of_o the_o say_v visible_a church_n until_o our_o day_n &_o will_v be_v frequent_v still_o especial_o in_o general_a counsel_n even_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n to_o put_v a_o firm_a period_n and_o full_a conclusion_n unto_o all_o controversy_n that_o come_v in_o question_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o the_o same_o authority_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o that_o first_o church_n have_v for_o direct_v of_o man_n soul_n unto_o their_o salvation_n the_o very_a self_n same_o and_o none_o other_o have_v the_o visible_a catholic_a church_n of_o our_o age_n and_o have_v have_v in_o all_o age_n and_o shall_v have_v in_o all_o to_o come_v verum_fw-la enim_fw-la non_fw-la variat_fw-la it_o be_v a_o ancient_a prescription_n and_o no_o more_o ancient_a than_o true_a god_n gift_n and_o grace_n confer_v upon_o his_o church_n be_v without_o repentance_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v ever_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o spirit_n of_o truth_n in_o patriarch_n prophet_n apostle_n martyr_n and_o other_o succeed_v pastor_n and_o doctor_n and_o christ_n his_o promise_n be_v not_o for_o one_o age_n only_o he_o shed_v not_o his_o precious_a blood_n for_o those_o of_o his_o age_n alone_o but_o for_o all_o all_o be_v alike_o near_o unto_o he_o all_o be_v alike_o dear_a unto_o he_o he_o take_v our_o nature_n in_o general_a to_o save_v mankind_n in_o general_a and_o therefore_o the_o care_n he_o have_v for_o one_o age_n of_o the_o church_n the_o same_o he_o have_v for_o all_o succeed_a age_n of_o the_o same_o as_o well_o for_o the_o last_o as_o for_o the_o first_o and_o this_o care_n of_o he_o continue_v so_o long_o as_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n endure_v 60._o this_o remittance_n then_o and_o reference_n unto_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n original_o proceed_v from_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v continual_o perpetuate_v by_o all_o succeed_a age_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o therefore_o as_o s._n paul_n in_o a_o controversy_n of_o lesser_a importance_n write_v to_o the_o corinthian_n about_o woman_n be_v veil_v in_o the_o church_n say_v to_o shut_v up_o the_o door_n to_o all_o further_a contention_n that_o if_o 16_o any_o man_n will_v seem_v to_o be_v contentious_a we_o have_v no_o such_o custom_n nor_o yet_o the_o church_n of_o god_n repress_v the_o contentious_a man_n as_o you_o see_v with_o the_o authority_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n so_o do_v all_o subsequent_a father_n of_o the_o orthodox_a church_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o the_o private_a write_n or_o in_o the_o world_n grand_a parliament_n in_o general_n counsel_n in_o all_o their_o conflict_n with_o heretic_n they_o ever_o use_v to_o repel_v and_o repress_v they_o by_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o mean_n and_o that_o be_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o know_v catholic_a church_n and_o look_v what_o sentence_n they_o pronounce_v against_o they_o for_o their_o contumacy_n see_v what_o censure_n they_o inflict_v upon_o they_o for_o their_o heresy_n it_o remain_v good_a against_o they_o and_o irrevocable_a it_o be_v ratyfy_v as_o the_o law_n of_o the_o mede_n and_o persian_n which_o can_v not_o be_v alter_v their_o authority_n 15._o be_v ground_v immediate_o upon_o those_o word_n of_o verity_n what_o soever_o you_o bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o the_o tribunal_n of_o heaven_n confirm_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n 19_o upon_o earth_n nay_o stand_v expect_v what_o be_v do_v by_o it_o upon_o earth_n such_o be_v the_o mystical_a dependency_n betwixt_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o such_o be_v the_o mutual_a correspondency_n betwixt_o the_o head_n and_o his_o member_n christ_n and_o his_o church_n dare_v then_o any_o man_n hereafter_o oppose_v his_o private_a spirit_n against_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o church_n or_o will_v he_o impudent_o presume_v to_o prefer_v his_o own_o conceit_n and_o opinion_n before_o her_o public_a tradition_n 61._o ancient_a s._n irenaeus_n who_o be_v in_o manner_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d apostolorum_fw-la for_o he_o live_v in_o the_o very_a next_o age_n after_o they_o write_v against_o the_o heresy_n of_o his_o day_n and_o have_v first_o declare_v how_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v visible_o plant_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o how_o it_o be_v continue_v to_o his_o time_n do_v then_o portrait_v out_o unto_o we_o &_o discourse_n at_o large_a of_o the_o authority_n sufficiency_n treasury_n tradition_n and_o absolute_a perfection_n of_o this_o church_n for_o the_o repel_v of_o all_o heresy_n and_o deliver_v of_o all_o truth_n his_o word_n be_v 4._o these_o tantae_fw-la igitur_fw-la ostensiones_fw-la cum_fw-la haec_fw-la sint_fw-la etc._n etc._n whereas_o these_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v say_v be_v so_o great_a demonstration_n of_o the_o truth_n we_o must_v not_o yet_o seek_v the_o truth_n from_o other_o church_n which_o be_v easy_o take_v from_o the_o church_n whereas_o the_o apostle_n do_v most_o full_o lay_v up_o in_o she_o all_o thing_n belong_v to_o the_o truth_n as_o in_o a_o certain_a rich_a treasure-house_n so_o as_o every_o man_n that_o will_v may_v take_v from_o thence_o the_o liquor_n or_o sustenance_n of_o life_n for_o that_o be_v the_o entrance_v unto_o life_n everlasting_a to_o believe_v the_o church_n &_o all_o other_o that_o fly_v this_o way_n be_v thief_n and_o murderer_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v avoid_v they_o that_o be_v such_o but_o with_o great_a diligence_n we_o must_v affect_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o from_o she_o take_v the_o tradition_n of_o truth_n and_o true_o if_o our_o contention_n be_v but_o about_o some_o small_a question_n in_o religion_n yet_o ought_v not_o we_o to_o have_v recourse_n unto_o the_o most_o ancient_a church_n wherein_o the_o apostle_n have_v once_o be_v conversant_a and_o so_o take_v from_o they_o that_o which_o be_v certain_a and_o clear_a for_o decide_v of_o the_o question_n and_o what_o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v leave_v unto_o we_o no_o scripture_n at_o all_o have_v it_o not_o be_v needful_a notwithstanding_o to_o follow_v the_o order_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o have_v leave_v unto_o we_o to_o who_o they_o to_o wit_n the_o apostle_n have_v commit_v those_o church_n 62._o thus_o far_o s._n irenaeus_n which_o i_o have_v of_o purpose_n choose_v to_o cite_v more_o at_o large_a for_o that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a alone_a to_o disclose_v his_o judgement_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o that_o first_o age_n next_o after_o the_o apostle_n how_o far_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o visible_a universal_a church_n then_o stretch_v and_o be_v esteem_v for_o especial_o for_o clear_v solue_v and_o decide_v of_o all_o doubt_n that_o possible_o can_v arise_v in_o religion_n and_o the_o reason_n there_o render_v by_o the_o same_o father_n be_v this_o she_o be_v the_o store-house_n wherein_o christ_n merit_n and_o the_o church_n treasure_n be_v lay_v up_o she_o be_v the_o way_n of_o life_n whereby_o we_o may_v come_v to_o eternal_a life_n and_o escape_v everlasting_a death_n that_o all_o be_v thief_n yea_o murderer_n of_o soul_n that_o do_v impugn_v she_o or_o seek_v other_o way_n of_o trial_n then_o she_o and_o her_o tradition_n from_o hand_n to_o hand_n that_o this_o tradition_n be_v sufficient_a though_o there_o be_v no_o scripture_n that_o from_o she_o and_o her_o alone_a the_o truth_n be_v to_o be_v take_v and_o not_o else_o tyme._n where_o that_o by_o she_o and_o her_o authority_n alone_o all_o doubt_n and_o question_n be_v to_o be_v so_o ve_v and_o decide_v can_v any_o thing_n be_v speak_v more_o effectual_a than_o this_o or_o be_v there_o any_o more_o plain_a easy_a evident_a
and_o universal_a direction_n can_v any_o rule_n be_v more_o probable_a and_o infallible_a than_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o this_o do_v agree_v both_o my_o foresay_a author_n in_o many_o other_o place_n of_o his_o work_n as_o also_o all_o that_o succeed_v he_o &_o take_v the_o like_a enterprise_n in_o hand_n of_o writing_n and_o prescribe_v against_o heretic_n as_o tertullian_n s._n cyprian_n s._n augustine_n s._n athanasius_n epiphanius_n theodoret_n s._n hierome_n s._n leo_n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n in_o his_o golden_a book_n against_o the_o profane_a innovation_n of_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n and_o diverse_a other_o which_o to_o avoid_v prolixity_n i_o omit_v all_o these_o do_v principal_o and_o real_o provoke_v and_o challenge_v all_o the_o heretic_n of_o their_o time_n unto_o this_o only_a and_o sure_a way_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o their_o day_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o for_o discern_v what_o be_v true_o catholic_a and_o what_o be_v heretical_a their_o several_a sentence_n be_v to_o prolix_a to_o be_v contain_v within_o the_o strict_a precinct_n and_o narrow_a bound_n of_o my_o brief_a intend_a consideration_n 63._o and_o now_o to_o put_v a_o period_n to_o this_o my_o three_o consideration_n lest_o it_o exceed_v a_o due_a proportion_n the_o upshot_n be_v this_o for_o asmuch_o then_n as_o this_o visible_a christian_a church_n begin_v and_o found_v by_o our_o saviour_n under_o the_o apostle_n be_v a_o visible_a church_n make_v and_o consist_v of_o visible_a man_n govern_v by_o visible_a pastor_n have_v visible_o descend_v from_o age_n to_o age_n through_o the_o century_n of_o the_o church_n by_o all_o lawful_a and_o ordinary_a succession_n of_o bishop_n which_o tertullian_n videsupr_fw-la require_v of_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n as_o they_o will_v avoid_v the_o blot_n of_o heresy_n that_o have_v lineal_o come_v down_o to_o our_o day_n second_o for_o asmuch_o as_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o church_n be_v esteem_v in_o every_o age_n to_o be_v the_o same_o for_o infallible_a direction_n that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o former_a first_o age_n through_o the_o assurance_n of_o christ_n his_o promise_n to_o that_o effect_n and_o last_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n of_o the_o fifteen_o age_n have_v in_o a_o general_a council_n examine_v decide_v conden_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o protestant_n for_o heresy_n in_o more_o than_o a_o hundred_o main_a point_n by_o name_n &_o have_v accurse_v and_o anathematise_v consideration_n both_o they_o and_o all_o their_o participant_n to_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n &_o that_o according_a to_o the_o very_a self_n same_o ground_n whereby_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v use_v to_o curse_v &_o anathematise_v all_o old_a heresy_n and_o heretic_n in_o former_a time_n these_o thing_n when_o i_o consider_v with_o more_o attention_n &_o make_v a_o general_a reflection_n thereon_o a_o sudden_a fear_n and_o care_n astonish_v yea_o as_o it_o be_v overwhelm_v i_o for_o that_o my_o everlasting_a salvation_n depend_v upon_o this_o point_n i_o have_v be_v so_o negligent_a in_o examine_v the_o premise_n and_o now_o i_o plain_o see_v as_o in_o a_o perfect_a glass_n of_o most_o impartial_a judgement_n that_o unless_o i_o can_v imagine_v with_o myself_o as_o diverse_a other_o fanatical_o do_v that_o christ_n promise_n have_v fail_v &_o that_o the_o first_o visible_a christian_a and_o catholic_a church_n found_v by_o he_o and_o spread_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v fail_v vanish_v and_o perish_v as_o be_v overcome_v by_o helgate_n and_o over_o grow_v with_o the_o weed_n of_o error_n &_o heresy_n i_o can_v never_o have_v any_o hope_n of_o salvation_n as_o long_o as_o i_o continue_v in_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o this_o be_v the_o issue_n of_o that_o consideration_n the_o four_o consideration_n there_o remain_v now_o a_o four_o consideration_n the_o subject_n whereof_o which_o notwithstanding_o perhaps_o be_v catholic_a of_o great_a importance_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v this_o to_o wit_n how_o out_o of_o the_o premise_n a_o man_n may_v probable_o collect_v nay_o necessary_o conclude_v who_o opinion_n be_v catholic_a and_o who_o heretical_a and_o thereupon_o may_v reflect_v upon_o himself_o in_o what_o state_n or_o condition_n he_o stand_v betwixt_o both_o as_o either_o affect_v to_o the_o one_o or_o interest_v in_o the_o other_o and_o albeit_o this_o have_v be_v partly_o discover_v by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v speak_v in_o the_o first_o consideration_n touch_v the_o name_n catholic_a that_o signify_v universal_a and_o whole_a and_o not_o a_o part_n or_o singularity_n in_o opinion_n by_o choice_n of_o a_o man_n own_o will_n and_o judgement_n for_o so_o heretic_n do_v signify_v as_o have_v be_v lay_v forth_o in_o the_o second_o consideration_n yet_o shall_v it_o be_v make_v more_o manifest_a by_o the_o particular_a practice_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o when_o the_o name_n shall_v pass_v into_o nature_n and_o appellation_n be_v turn_v into_o application_n and_o first_o to_o speak_v to_o the_o point_n in_o a_o word_n the_o catholic_a admit_v all_o whole_o and_o entire_o without_o addition_n or_o detraction_n which_o the_o know_a catholic_a church_n propose_v to_o be_v believe_v of_o her_o son_n as_o she_o have_v it_o reveal_v unto_o she_o from_o god_n her_o father_n but_o as_o for_o the_o heretic_n and_o the_o chooser_n tamquam_fw-la dominus_fw-la propryiuris_fw-la as_o he_o that_o will_v take_v his_o own_o swing_n though_o it_o be_v in_o schism_n and_o heresy_n he_o make_v himself_o judge_n over_o all_o i_o mean_v god_n the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n admit_v some_o and_o reject_v the_o rest_n as_o it_o please_v his_o private_a fancy_n or_o displease_v his_o peevish_a judgement_n he_o neither_o respect_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o regard_v his_o own_o obedience_n due_a thereunto_o his_o ground_n be_v either_o scripture_n false_o by_o he_o interpret_v or_o a_o private_a lie_a spirit_n such_o as_o micheas_n the_o lord_n true_a prophet_n prophesy_v to_o be_v in_o the_o false_a prophet_n of_o baal_n wherein_o he_o be_v delude_v or_o other_o argument_n of_o reason_n &_o nature_n against_o 22._o faith_n and_o the_o god_n of_o nature_n and_o thus_o he_o be_v bewitch_v &_o pervert_v contrary_a to_o all_o true_a and_o only_o save_v catholic_a ground_n contrary_a to_o that_o sure_a certain_a and_o infallible_a way_n of_o trial_n which_o erst_o while_o we_o treat_v of_o in_o the_o three_o consideration_n and_o purpose_n now_o by_o god_n holy_a assistance_n to_o make_v use_n of_o all_o in_o this_o 65._o some_o man_n i_o find_v to_o entertain_v this_o concepit_fw-la that_o english_a protestant_n and_o roman_a catholic_n may_v live_v in_o their_o several_a profession_n of_o religion_n and_o be_v save_v together_o and_o much_o more_o they_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o all_o protestant_n of_o different_a profession_n and_o sect_n as_o lutheran_n and_o sacramentary_n and_o much_o more_o the_o different_a sort_n of_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o sect_n as_o caluinist_n in_o england_n distinguish_v by_o the_o name_n of_o molles_n and_o rigidi_fw-la moderate_a protestant_n religion_n and_o fervent_a puritan_n and_o the_o reason_n for_o this_o their_o opinion_n be_v first_o of_o doctrine_n for_o that_o every_o one_o of_o their_o difference_n do_v not_o make_v heresy_n or_o if_o they_o do_v yet_o not_o so_o grievous_a heresy_n as_o the_o father_n of_o the_o primative_a church_n condemn_v and_o anathematise_v they_o mean_v such_o heresy_n as_o impugn_a the_o person_n of_o the_o b._n trinity_n the_o nature_n of_o christ_n god_n and_o man_n the_o incarnation_n and_o passion_n and_o the_o like_a &_o consequent_o though_o those_o ancient_a heresy_n be_v damnable_a yet_o be_v not_o those_o of_o our_o day_n plead_v the_o protestant_n but_o that_o both_o part_n live_v well_o may_v be_v save_v as_o his_o majesty_n in_o this_o his_o premonition_n to_o prince_n do_v testify_v that_o his_o noble_a mother_n send_v he_o word_n not_o long_o before_o her_o martyrdom_n by_o the_o master_n of_o her_o household_n a_o scotish_n gentleman_n yet_o live_v that_o his_o majesty_n may_v persist_v in_o his_o 34._o protestant_a religion_n and_o yet_o do_v well_o enough_o if_o he_o live_v virtuous_o and_o govern_v according_o 66._o but_o sure_o how_o far_o the_o credit_n of_o that_o master_n of_o household_n be_v a_o protestant_n as_o i_o hear_v he_o then_o be_v meluin_n and_o now_o be_v may_v extend_v itself_o to_o be_v believe_v against_o the_o mistress_n and_o high_a lady_n of_o that_o household_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o that_o quality_n and_o consequence_n i_o know_v not_o yet_o certain_a i_o be_o of_o this_o that_o the_o opinion_n that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v so_o save_v be_v most_o false_a and_o absurd_a in_o itself_o and_o very_o unlikely_a also_o to_o proceed_v from_o her_o
calvin_n antiquity_n well_o the_o admonition_n be_v this_o cave_n christiane_n lector_fw-la etc._n etc._n beware_v christian_a reader_n of_o the_o book_n of_o john_n calvin_n especial_o in_o the_o article_n of_o trinity_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o mediator_n of_o baptism_n of_o predestination_n etc._n etc._n for_o that_o they_o do_v contain_v most_o impious_a and_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n so_o he_o whereby_o be_v understand_v not_o only_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o lutheran_n church_n concern_v the_o caluinist_n lutheran_n doctrine_n but_o also_o in_o what_o article_n the_o difference_n betwixt_o they_o do_v principal_o consist_v and_o these_o be_v neither_o few_o in_o number_n nor_o mean_v in_o nature_n as_o you_o see_v confirm_v by_o the_o particular_a exception_n which_o article_n be_v reiterated_a by_o other_o lutheran_n writer_n as_o namely_o by_o albertus_n graverus_n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v the_o war_n of_o john_n calvin_n with_o jesus_n christ_n which_o book_n be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o christ._n redemption_n 1598._o wherein_o he_o show_v that_o the_o article_n whereby_o the_o lutheran_n do_v chief_o differ_v from_o the_o caluinist_n heretical_a doctrine_n be_v of_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n of_o baptism_n and_o of_o predestination_n and_o jacobus_n halbruneir_v another_o lutheran_n doctor_n publish_v a_o other_o book_n the_o same_o year_n before_o to_o prove_v caluinisme_n to_o be_v heresy_n and_o to_o the_o former_a article_n of_o albertus_n he_o add_v other_o two_o wherein_o lutheran_n and_o caluinist_n do_v deep_o dissent_v which_o be_v de_fw-fr maiestate_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o ministerio_fw-la verbi_fw-la whereby_o he_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o caluinist_n be_v true_o and_o proper_o heretic_n to_o lutheran_n and_o this_o for_o the_o second_o point_n 80._o it_o rest_v now_o that_o i_o come_v unto_o the_o three_o rank_n of_o english_a protestant_n and_o puritan_n which_o be_v two_o different_a sect_n of_o calvin_n doctrine_n which_o be_v find_v together_o in_o no_o state_n or_o kingdom_n perhaps_o of_o christendom_n but_o only_o in_o england_n and_o although_o some_o protestant_a writer_n for_o dissemble_v their_o own_o division_n when_o they_o deal_v with_o other_o catholic_n will_v needs_o forsooth_o acknowledge_v they_o for_o brethren_n as_o not_o differ_v from_o they_o in_o any_o substantial_a point_n of_o doctrine_n yet_o in_o all_o their_o other_o write_n either_o against_o they_o or_o of_o they_o they_o disclose_v plain_o what_o they_o think_v of_o each_o other_o hold_v they_o both_o for_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o protestant_a church_n which_o be_v presume_v by_o they_o as_o they_o must_v needs_o presume_v to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a catholic_a church_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o puritan_n who_o from_o their_o innermost_a soul_n detest_v the_o same_o and_o the_o communion_n thereof_o as_o antichristian_a must_v needs_o be_v sectary_n nay_o heretic_n to_o that_o church_n and_o this_o be_v consonant_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o these_o scripture_n and_o most_o conformable_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o ancient_a father_n as_o be_v before_o copious_o in_o the_o precedent_a consideration_n assever_v 82._o for_o confirmation_n of_o which_o dissension_n capital_a and_o real_a hostility_n between_o our_o puritan_n and_o protestant_n in_o sundry_a main_n point_v of_o their_o religion_n i_o may_v here_o allege_v and_o produce_v infinite_a authoritye_n and_o innumerable_a argument_n if_o i_o shall_v not_o surcharge_n my_o treatise_n the_o two_o book_n yet_o extant_a print_v by_o public_a authority_n in_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o year_n i_o mean_v the_o survey_v of_o the_o holy_a pretend_a discipline_n compile_v as_o it_o be_v think_v by_o he_o that_o be_v now_o arrive_v to_o the_o high_a pitch_n of_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n in_o that_o kingdom_n and_o the_o other_o bear_v the_o inscription_n of_o dangerous_a position_n ascribe_v to_o doctor_n sutcliffe_n both_o of_o they_o receyve_v press_n at_o london_n by_o john_n wolf_n anno_fw-la dom._n 1593._o do_v sufficient_o notify_v unto_o the_o world_n how_o reconciliable_a the_o puritan_n position_n be_v with_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o that_o in_o sundry_a article_n of_o great_a weight_n and_o moment_n and_o among_o many_o other_o which_o to_o avoid_v prelixity_n i_o purposely_o omit_v the_o title_n of_o the_o 22._o and_o 23._o chapter_n of_o the_o survey_v be_v these_o that_o they_o to_o wit_n the_o puritan_n do_v take_v from_o christian_a prince_n &_o ascribe_v unto_o their_o pretend_a regiment_n the_o supreme_a and_o immediate_a authority_n under_o christ_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a and_o in_o the_o oppugn_a theros_n do_v join_v with_o the_o papist_n whereupon_o i_o infer_v that_o if_o this_o spiritual_a supremacy_n be_v any_o substantial_a point_n of_o doctrine_n among_o the_o protestant_n than_o the_o obstinate_a repugnance_n thereof_o by_o the_o puritan_n must_v needs_o be_v schism_n and_o heresy_n 82._o i_o pretermit_v diverse_a other_o book_n whereof_o i_o have_v be_v a_o eye_n witness_n how_o purposely_o and_o direct_o they_o treat_v of_o these_o matter_n as_o namely_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o vicechancelor_n &_o doctor_n of_o oxford_n unto_o the_o petition_n of_o a_o 1000_o puritan_n anno_fw-la dom._n 1603._o wherein_o it_o be_v plain_o convince_v that_o the_o puritan_n hold_v their_o platform_n of_o ecclesiastical_a 20._o government_n of_o the_o government_n of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n for_o a_o thing_n of_o no_o less_o importance_n then_o be_v the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ._n they_o hold_v it_o further_o for_o a_o essential_a part_n of_o their_o say_a gospel_n for_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v receive_v upon_o pain_n of_o damnation_n for_o a_o essential_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n without_o the_o which_o the_o protestant_n church_n be_v no_o church_n their_o faith_n no_o faith_n their_o gospel_n no_o gospel_n etc._n etc._n and_o to_o conform_v to_o that_o which_o m._n rogers_n write_v in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o bishop_n article_n where_o he_o testify_v that_o the_o puritan_n do_v hold_v their_o platform_n differ_v from_o the_o protestant_n to_o be_v a_o special_a part_n of_o the_o gospel_n yea_o the_o very_a gospel_n itself_o &_o to_o be_v of_o such_o importance_n as_o if_o every_o hair_n of_o their_o head_n be_v a_o life_n they_o ought_v to_o afford_v they_o all_o in_o defence_n thereof_o so_o they_o and_o in_o sober_a sadness_n suppose_v their_o principle_n to_o be_v true_a have_v they_o not_o great_a reason_n for_o that_o their_o difference_n be_v in_o so_o main_a &_o very_a substantial_a point_n if_o we_o refere_v they_o to_o their_o head_n whereof_o there_o be_v extant_a a_o very_a substantial_a declaration_n and_o conviction_n as_o to_o i_o it_o seem_v in_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o catholic_a divine_a in_o his_o answer_n to_o sir_n edward_n cook_n five_o part_n of_o report_n whither_o i_o refer_v the_o ingenious_a &_o judicious_a reader_n for_o further_a perusal_n of_o this_o point_n for_o there_o it_o be_v show_v and_o irrefragable_o against_o all_o impugner_n thereof_o prove_v how_o essential_a and_o substantial_a difference_n of_o doctrine_n there_o be_v about_o the_o origin_n church_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n and_o authority_n between_o the_o protestant_n puritan_n and_o catholic_n of_o england_n the_o one_o that_o be_v the_o protestant_n ascribe_v it_o to_o their_o temporal_a prince_n the_o other_o challenge_v it_o as_o most_o proper_o pertain_v to_o their_o private_a conventicle_n &_o assembly_n the_o last_o &_o three_o to_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n the_o consequence_n whereof_o be_v this_o that_o whosoever_o of_o the_o three_o party_n have_v the_o right_n in_o this_o point_n there_o only_o be_v the_o true_a church_n there_o alone_o be_v the_o true_a ecclesiastiall_a authority_n of_o preach_v teach_v or_o deign_v minister_n administer_a sacrament_n exercise_v censure_n and_o jurisdiction_n bind_v or_o lose_v remit_v or_o retain_v sin_n and_o the_o like_a etc._n etc._n and_o for_o the_o other_o two_o church_n they_o do_v remain_v as_o secular_a and_o profane_a congregation_n without_o any_o vital_a spirit_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n at_o all_o let_v they_o then_o contend_v never_o so_o much_o about_o the_o key_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n yet_o the_o plain_a truth_n be_v they_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o open_v or_o shut_v the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n unto_o their_o own_o friend_n or_o against_o their_o enemy_n 83._o and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o puritan_n also_o in_o their_o plea_n do_v persuade_v themselves_o to_o have_v the_o right_n on_o their_o side_n church_n they_o must_v needs_o infer_v the_o other_o consequence_n against_o the_o protestant_a church_n hold_v it_o to_o be_v no_o church_n as_o the_o foresay_a answer_n of_o oxford_n doctor_n pag._n 15._o do_v confess_v that_o the_o brownist_n do_v ancrre_o
region_n 94._o and_o in_o all_o this_o we_o have_v not_o just_o offend_v the_o king_n our_o sovereign_n let_v heaven_n tribunal_n be_v witness_n of_o our_o innocency_n and_o we_o must_v against_o all_o detraction_n and_o calumniation_n of_o our_o unjust_a adversary_n plead_v it_o also_o before_o your_o majesty_n and_o this_o same_o change_n in_o like_a manner_n will_v i_o hope_v and_o pray_v for_o in_o your_o majesty_n and_o with_o this_o hope_n will_v i_o for_o this_o time_n again_o dutiful_o depart_v from_o your_o highness_n and_o pass_v to_o the_o christian_a reader_n to_o examine_v now_o in_o particular_a the_o four_o head_n most_o prudent_o and_o religious_o propose_v and_o resolve_v upon_o by_o your_o majesty_n the_o god_n of_o solomon_n inspire_v into_o your_o princely_a breast_n the_o wisdom_n of_o solomon_n and_o make_v your_o majesty_n as_o a_o angel_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v discern_v betwixt_o the_o right_a hand_n &_o the_o left_a the_o right_a and_o the_o wrong_n catholic_a religion_n and_o heretical_a innovation_n that_o you_o may_v be_v able_a to_o put_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o those_o of_o your_o subject_n that_o serve_v god_n and_o such_o as_o fear_v he_o not_o the_o second_o chapter_n that_o treat_v the_o first_o head_n touch_v by_o the_o king_n majesty_n for_o try_v all_o of_o a_o christian_a catholic_a which_o be_v the_o believe_a of_o holy_a scripture_n among_o those_o principal_a ground_n serious_o acknowledge_v and_o confident_o yet_o religious_o aver_v by_o his_o excellent_a majesty_n of_o england_n for_o testify_v &_o convince_a himself_n to_o be_v a_o christian_a catholic_a king_n and_o no_o heretic_n the_o first_o in_o place_n and_o order_n of_o method_n if_o we_o due_o respect_v the_o inestimable_a weight_n of_o the_o divine_a &_o heavenly_a subject_n be_v zealous_o assever_v by_o his_o royal_a person_n in_o these_o very_a word_n follow_v to_o wit_n as_o for_o the_o scripture_n no_o man_n doubt_v i_o will_v believe_v they_o but_o even_o for_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la 36._o i_o hold_v they_o in_o the_o same_o account_n that_o the_o ancient_n do_v which_o pious_a assertion_n of_o his_o majesty_n i_o for_o my_o part_n believe_v with_o all_o my_o hart_n and_o be_v it_o ever_o far_o from_o i_o to_o imagine_v otherwise_o of_o my_o sovereign_n in_o entertain_v any_o the_o least_o sinister_a opinion_n or_o suspicion_n but_o that_o he_o give_v his_o full_a consent_n and_o assent_v unto_o all_o god_n his_o sacred_a writ_n which_o he_o esteem_v to_o be_v canonical_a scripture_n and_o that_o he_o reverence_v in_o like_a manner_n the_o other_o as_o here_o he_o say_v distinguish_v they_o by_o the_o name_n of_o apocrypha_n as_o write_n compile_v by_o good_a and_o holy_a man_n but_o yet_o for_o such_o as_o are_z secundae_fw-la lectionis_fw-la or_o ordinis_fw-la and_o not_o canonical_a or_o sufficient_a for_o so_o be_v his_o majesty_n 36._o word_n whereupon_o alone_o to_o ground_v any_o article_n of_o faith_n except_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o some_o other_o place_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n so_o his_o majesty_n do_v piousty_a i_o doubt_v not_o and_o with_o great_a discretion_n in_o his_o sense_n aver_v 2._o but_o yet_o i_o must_v ingenuous_o confess_v that_o employ_v myself_o somewhat_o serious_o in_o my_o private_a meditation_n and_o most_o secret_a silence_n about_o this_o subject_n many_o difficulty_n occur_v &_o diverse_a be_v the_o consideration_n that_o present_v themselves_o unto_o i_o as_o my_o mind_n begin_v to_o be_v somewhat_o earnesty_n bend_v about_o this_o business_n and_o these_o i_o have_v think_v good_a to_o impart_v unto_o the_o christian_a reader_n in_o this_o place_n as_o they_o ensue_v the_o first_o consideration_n and_o first_o if_o this_o be_v all_o &_o that_o on_o scripture_n behalf_n there_o be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v require_v to_o prove_v &_o make_v a_o man_n a_o christian_a catholic_a but_o a_o frank_a and_o ingenious_a catholic_a acknowledgement_n to_o assent_v unto_o and_o to_o believe_v all_o those_o scripture_n which_o we_o deem_v for_o canonical_a in_o our_o opinion_n and_o for_o the_o sense_n to_o judge_v it_o agreeable_a and_o correspondent_a to_o our_o own_o private_a imagination_n i_o say_v if_o this_o be_v all_o all_o controversy_n of_o religion_n betwixt_o all_o party_n never_o so_o opposite_a &_o different_a in_o opinion_n may_v easy_o no_o doubt_n surcease_v and_o speedy_o without_o either_o further_a delay_n or_o difficulty_n be_v accord_v for_o that_o all_o side_n and_o party_n do_v free_o and_o voluntary_o offer_v to_o profess_v this_o point_n and_o that_o as_o i_o very_o think_v from_o their_o heart_n 4._o but_o alas_o this_o be_v neither_o all_o nor_o any_o sound_a part_n of_o all_o all_o be_v but_o we_o deem_v and_o we_o judge_v this_o be_v scripture_n and_o this_o be_v the_o sense_n here_o be_v nothing_o in_o all_o but_o that_o which_o mar_v all_o &_o that_o in_o the_o very_a main_a point_n which_o shall_v make_v all_o and_o that_o be_v proper_a choice_n private_a election_n which_o we_o know_v by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v former_o treat_v and_o sufficient_o prove_v must_v needs_o be_v heresy_n and_o consequent_o this_o main_n ground_n of_o scripture_n itself_o thus_o from_o ourselves_o take_v and_o thus_o lay_v for_o avoid_v of_o heresy_n open_v the_o very_a main_n gap_n unto_o all_o heresy_n and_o yet_o i_o must_v here_o though_o now_o with_o no_o small_a grief_n and_o vexation_n of_o spirit_n i_o do_v remember_v it_o liberal_o acknowledge_v that_o for_o some_o year_n together_o when_o i_o frame_v religion_n in_o the_o shop_n of_o my_o own_o brain_n proper_a invention_n and_o private_a gloss_n as_o himself_o all_o sectary_n usual_o do_v i_o be_v so_o hearty_o affect_v sincere_o as_o i_o think_v delight_v yea_o as_o it_o be_v ravish_v with_o this_o allure_a consideration_n and_o best_a please_a persuasion_n of_o sacred_a scripture_n alone_o who_o sole_a authority_n i_o seem_v to_o myself_o then_o to_o follow_v and_o no_o other_o humane_a or_o terrene_a motive_n whatsoever_o no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o once_o reflect_v back_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n whence_o as_o i_o receive_v the_o scripture_n themselves_o so_o much_o more_o ought_v i_o to_o have_v receive_v the_o sense_n as_o i_o think_v myself_o more_o then_o half_a in_o heaven_n when_o god_n know_v i_o be_v ready_a to_o tumble_v into_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n think_v this_o way_n of_o the_o scripture_n alone_o of_o all_o other_o way_n the_o most_o infallible_a and_o so_o certain_a as_o that_o i_o can_v not_o possible_o err_v thereby_o 5._o and_o be_v in_o this_o peremptory_a presume_a vein_n and_o strain_n of_o scripture_n to_o add_v as_o it_o be_v fuel_n unto_o the_o fire_n of_o this_o my_o strong_a conceit_a imagination_n i_o often_o time_n remember_v and_o with_o wonderful_a admiration_n repeat_v yea_o reiterated_a again_o and_o again_o that_o animous_a courageous_a heroical_a sentence_n and_o speech_n of_o apostolical_a and_o prophetical_a fortitude_n as_o to_o i_o it_o then_o seem_v of_o luther_n himself_o who_o allege_v scripture_n for_o his_o cause_n and_o contemn_v all_o other_o proof_n thus_o triumphant_o insult_v over_o king_n henuy_v the_o eight_o hic_fw-la sto_z hic_fw-la sedeo_fw-la hic_fw-la glorior_fw-la hic_fw-la triumpho_fw-la 1._o hic_fw-la insulto_fw-la etc._n etc._n here_o i_o stand_v here_o i_o sit_v here_o i_o do_v glory_n here_o i_o do_v triumph_n here_o i_o do_v insult_v over_o papist_n thomist_n henriciste_n and_o sophiste_n and_o all_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n much_o more_o over_o the_o say_n of_o man_n be_v they_o never_o so_o holy_a luther_n god_n his_o word_n be_v above_o all_o the_o divine_a majesty_n make_v for_o i_o so_o as_o i_o pass_v not_o if_o a_o thousand_o augustine_n a_o thousand_o cyprian_n and_o a_o thousand_o king_n henry_n church_n shall_v stand_v against_o i_o god_n can_v err_v nor_o deceive_v but_o augustine_n and_o cyprian_n may_v err_v and_o have_v err_v so_o he_o 6._o and_o true_o this_o bold_a kind_n of_o free_a speech_n affect_v i_o very_o much_o as_o then_o for_o that_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o simple_o to_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o exceed_a great_a confidence_n of_o his_o cause_n and_o i_o think_v that_o i_o feel_v and_o perceive_v some_o part_n and_o measure_n of_o the_o same_o spirit_n in_o myself_o at_o that_o time_n which_o bring_v i_o also_o to_o this_o peremptory_a resolution_n to_o wit_n that_o whatsoever_o i_o speak_v forth_o of_o scripture_n or_o can_v make_v but_o the_o least_o show_n of_o word_n and_o warrant_v for_o out_o of_o god_n holy_a book_n that_o must_v needs_o be_v true_a certain_a and_o infallible_a in_o the_o very_a self_n same_o sense_n that_o i_o speak_v it_o and_o can_v not_o possible_o no_o not_o by_o man_n or_o angel_n be_v control_v the_o same_o spirit_n also_o do_v i_o observe_v in_o many_o other_o of_o
my_o brethren_n of_o the_o english_a ministry_n who_o in_o like_a manner_n &_o some_o of_o they_o with_o great_a zeal_n ground_v themselves_o upon_o scripture_n even_o as_o i_o do_v which_o concurrence_n in_o opinion_n do_v not_o a_o little_a confirm_v i_o in_o this_o my_o own_o headstrong_a imagination_n 7._o but_o afterwards_o upon_o better_a insight_n of_o matter_n many_o occurrence_n and_o circumstance_n of_o no_o small_a importance_n for_o the_o shake_n and_o ruinate_v of_o this_o false_a and_o totter_a foundation_n interpose_v themselves_o to_o the_o view_n of_o my_o understanding_n and_o these_o great_o calm_v this_o fervour_n of_o i_o and_o abate_v the_o edge_n of_o my_o appetite_n unto_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o my_o own_o commentary_n thereupon_o 8._o for_o first_o i_o find_v that_o even_o luther_n himself_o that_o do_v thus_o confident_o triumph_v upon_o allege_v of_o scripture_n against_o scripture_n all_o ancient_a father_n thomist_n sophist_n henriciste_n and_o the_o like_a be_v not_o admit_v nor_o follow_v by_o our_o english_a church_n in_o many_o of_o his_o main_a position_n of_o religion_n though_o we_o of_o england_n do_v and_o do_v hold_v he_o for_o a_o great_a saint_n a_o fly_a angel_n one_o that_o have_v primitias_fw-la spiritus_fw-la the_o prime_a spirit_n of_o the_o new_a protestant_a gospel_n whereupon_o i_o have_v hear_v some_o that_o have_v presume_v in_o their_o popular_a pulpit_n declamation_n amid_o their_o own_o sectary_n to_o invest_v he_o with_o the_o title_n of_o a_o five_o evangelist_n i_o say_v he_o be_v not_o believe_v by_o we_o though_o he_o cyte_v never_o so_o many_o scripture_n and_o never_o so_o confident_o in_o sundry_a weighty_a position_n and_o controversy_n now_o in_o hand_n as_o namely_o about_o the_o real_a presence_n wherein_o he_o most_o of_o all_o pretend_a yea_o and_o have_v indeed_o found_v himself_o upon_o clear_a and_o evident_a scripture_n and_o be_v it_o any_o marvel_n when_o heresy_n depart_v from_o unity_n must_v needs_o breed_v variety_n and_o cause_n diversity_n between_o the_o sectmaister_n and_o the_o sectary_n the_o father_n of_o innovation_n and_o the_o follower_n the_o author_n of_o schism_n and_o the_o mantainer_n the_o inventor_n of_o novelty_n and_o the_o imbracer_n thereof_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o old_a tertullian_n say_v to_o the_o same_o above_o 1400._o year_n ago_o when_o heresy_n be_v yet_o but_o young_a and_o as_o it_o be_v in_o their_o infancy_n mentior_fw-la say_v he_o si_fw-la non_fw-la etiam_fw-la àregulis_fw-la suis_fw-la variant_n inter_fw-la se_fw-la dum_fw-la unusquisque_fw-la proinde_fw-la svo_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la modulatur_fw-la quae_fw-la accepit_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la de_fw-la svo_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la eadem_fw-la composuit_fw-la 42._o ille_fw-la qui_fw-la tradit_fw-la agnoscit_fw-la naturam_fw-la svam_fw-la &_o originis_fw-la suae_fw-la morem_fw-la prosectus_fw-la rei_fw-la idem_fw-la licuit_fw-la valentinianis_fw-la quod_fw-la valentino_n idem_fw-la marcionitis_n quod_fw-la marcioni_fw-la de_fw-la abitrio_fw-la svo_fw-la fidem_fw-la innovare_fw-la denique_fw-la penitus_fw-la inspectae_fw-la haereses_fw-la omnes_fw-la in_o multis_fw-la cum_fw-la auctoribus_fw-la suis_fw-la dissentientes_fw-la deprehenduntur_fw-la i_o be_o deceive_v if_o they_o do_v not_o yet_o differ_v from_o their_o own_o rule_n among_o themselves_o while_o every_o man_n therefore_o tune_v the_o thing_n which_o he_o receive_v after_o his_o own_o fashion_n as_o the_o author_n deliver_v they_o according_a to_o his_o fancy_n the_o issue_n of_o the_o thing_n agnise_v her_o nature_n and_o argue_v the_o manner_n of_o her_o origin_n the_o same_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o valentinian_o that_o be_v lawful_a for_o valentinus_n and_o for_o the_o marcionite_n that_o be_v lawful_a for_o martion_n to_o bring_v in_o a_o innovation_n in_o religion_n at_o their_o pleasure_n to_o conclude_v all_o heresy_n be_v thorough_o look_v into_o be_v find_v in_o many_o thing_n to_o dissent_v from_o the_o first_o author_n and_o broacher_n of_o they_o hitherto_o tertullian_n can_v any_o more_o effectual_o prescription_n be_v make_v than_o this_o against_o the_o heretic_n of_o our_o day_n do_v they_o not_o seem_v to_o express_v and_o present_v the_o condition_n and_o quality_n of_o their_o ancient_a progenitor_n and_o forerunner_n this_o than_o be_v my_o first_o cogitation_n that_o albeit_o our_o english_a protestant_n do_v well_o allow_v and_o admire_v that_o insolency_n in_o luther_n of_o press_v scripture_n never_o so_o mad_o understand_v against_o catholic_n yet_o when_o he_o urge_v never_o so_o clear_a scripture_n against_o themselves_o and_o their_o opinion_n they_o reject_v and_o contemn_v both_o he_o and_o his_o scripture_n 9_o second_o i_o consider_v that_o when_o the_o devil_n tempt_v christ_n he_o come_v not_o without_o his_o scriptum_n est_fw-la he_o have_v the_o word_n for_o his_o warrant_n and_o therefore_o the_o less_o i_o marvel_v heretic_n that_o all_o sectary_n and_o heretic_n from_o the_o very_a first_o foundation_n of_o christian_n religion_n have_v principal_o found_v themselves_o and_o their_o heresy_n upon_o pretence_n of_o scripture_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o several_a work_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n that_o confute_v they_o frequentes_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o citandis_fw-la scripture_n say_v tertullian_n they_o be_v frequent_a in_o cite_v scripture_n they_o run_v over_o the_o law_n psalm_n prophet_n ghospell_n epistle_n and_o the_o residue_n of_o holy_a scripture_n with_o great_a facility_n say_v vincentius_n lyrinensis_n and_o even_o in_o compitis_fw-la &_o convivijs_fw-la in_o market_n place_n and_o banquet_n among_o their_o own_o sectary_n among_o stranger_n private_o public_o in_o read_n their_o book_n in_o sermon_n will_v they_o be_v full_a of_o scripture_n nihil_fw-la umquam_fw-la penè_fw-la de_fw-la svo_fw-la proserunt_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la etiam_fw-la scripture_n verbis_fw-la adumbrare_fw-la conentur_fw-la they_o bring_v nothing_o in_o manner_n of_o their_o own_o which_o they_o shadow_v not_o and_o cloak_n with_o some_o scripture_n or_o other_o not_o unlike_o our_o london_n dame_n and_o the_o wife_n of_o other_o great_a town_n and_o city_n at_o this_o day_n i_o have_v almost_o add_v shrewsbury_n omnes_fw-la tument_fw-la etc._n etc._n all_o of_o they_o swell_v with_o pride_n all_o of_o they_o promise_n knowledge_n they_o be_v perfect_a catechiste_n before_o they_o can_v their_o alphabet_n ipsae_fw-la mulieres_fw-la 4._o hereticae_fw-la quam_fw-la procaces_fw-la quae_fw-la audeant_fw-la docere_fw-la contendere_fw-la etc._n etc._n their_o very_a heretical_a woman_n how_o saucy_a and_o malepert_a they_o be_v which_o dare_v teach_v contend_v etc._n etc._n so_o tertullian_n and_o then_o further_o as_o s._n nazianzen_n before_o allege_v well_o note_v these_o heretical_a scripturian_o run_v over_o all_o the_o corpse_n of_o sacred_a writ_n nay_o gallop_a over_o the_o whole_a field_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o though_o the_o whole_a be_v but_o a_o horserase_n they_o do_v here_o and_o there_o uno_fw-la verbo_fw-la vel_fw-la altero_fw-la tamquam_fw-la veneni_fw-la gut_n a_o inficiunt_fw-la with_o a_o word_n or_o two_o of_o false_a exposition_n as_o with_o a_o drop_n of_o poison_n infect_v the_o whole_a pervert_v the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n by_o their_o false_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o to_o their_o own_o damnation_n and_o damnation_n of_o their_o follower_n as_o the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n do_v signify_v 10._o three_o i_o consider_v that_o not_o only_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n but_o also_o the_o modern_a schismatickes_n and_o sectary_n of_o our_o time_n do_v by_o the_o one_o and_o the_o same_o spirit_n appeal_v to_o the_o tribunal_n of_o scripture_n and_o that_o both_o general_o against_o scripture_n those_o of_o the_o roman_a belief_n &_o particular_o among_o themselves_o the_o one_o against_o the_o other_o as_o lutheran_n against_o sacramentary_n and_o sacramentary_n against_o anabaptist_n and_o those_o against_o these_o and_o every_o sectary_n against_o his_o fellow_n and_o all_o direct_o against_o god_n his_o church_n and_o his_o truth_n and_o though_o each_o sectary_n profess_v to_o allege_v scripture_n and_o pretend_v neither_o to_o build_v upon_o the_o sand_n nor_o upon_o the_o shore_n of_o private_a fancy_n or_o his_o own_o unstable_a judgement_n but_o upon_o the_o main_n rock_n of_o god_n his_o word_n yet_o heresy_n grow_v on_o all_o side_n and_o thereupon_o controversy_n become_v endless_a and_o interminable_a i_o remember_v not_o long_o since_o that_o light_v upon_o a_o little_a book_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n i_o fall_v upon_o thirty_o place_n of_o plain_a scripture_n and_o every_o one_o of_o these_o place_n seem_v by_o the_o extern_a letter_n to_o make_v perspicuous_o for_o the_o aforesaid_a anabaptist_n and_o their_o heresy_n which_o yet_o in_o england_n we_o do_v condemn_v and_o consequent_o do_v hold_v all_o those_o place_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v misalledge_v abuse_a and_o false_o interpret_v by_o they_o be_v they_o never_o so_o many_o seem_v they_o never_o so_o plain_a or_o pregnant_a 11._o but_o here_o i_o will_v demand_v of_o any_o ingenious_a protestant_a how_o
the_o anabaptist_n can_v ever_o be_v convince_v of_o his_o heresy_n by_o any_o ground_n of_o protestant_a religion_n will_v the_o protestant_n appeal_v he_o to_o the_o scripture_n the_o anabaptist_n can_v produce_v more_o text_n and_o allege_v more_o plentiful_a place_n of_o scripture_n than_o he_o can_v will_v he_o refer_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o place_n cite_v on_o both_o side_n to_o the_o spirit_n the_o anabaptist_n present_o presume_v and_o brag_v of_o a_o great_a measure_n of_o the_o spirit_n than_o he_o will_v the_o protestant_n accuse_v his_o spirit_n as_o erroneous_a and_o author_n of_o a_o wrong_a interpretation_n as_o 23_o micheas_n true_o charge_v the_o false_a prophet_n of_o jezabel_n when_o he_o can_v they_o that_o satan_n have_v offer_v unto_o almighry_n god_n that_o he_o will_v go_v forth_o and_o be_v a_o lie_a spirit_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o all_o achabs_n false_a prophet_n then_o will_v he_o reply_v again_o as_o zidkiah_n do_v and_o when_o depart_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n from_o i_o to_o 24._o speak_v in_o thou_o will_v he_o convent_n he_o before_o the_o consistory_n and_o sribunall_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n &_o bishop_n thereof_o as_o diverse_a have_v be_v and_o be_v burn_v by_o they_o the_o anabaptist_n present_o complain_v and_o in_o this_o very_o just_o that_o it_o be_v no_o indifferent_a kind_n of_o trial_n to_o be_v judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n final_o will_v the_o protestant_a remit_v it_o to_o the_o umpiring_a of_o any_o other_o present_a church_n or_o be_v content_a that_o all_o controversy_n betwixt_o they_o shall_v fall_v to_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o father_n the_o anabaptist_n kick_v against_o that_o &_o cut_v of_o all_o mean_n of_o trial_n with_o this_o text_n of_o scripture_n spiritualis_fw-la 25._o homo_fw-la omne_fw-la dijudicat_fw-la &_o ipse_fw-la à_fw-la nemine_fw-la iudicatur_fw-la the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o thing_n and_o need_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v of_o any_o thus_o we_o see_v even_o among_o sectary_n themselves_o controversy_n grow_v endless_a by_o scripture_n though_o all_o pretend_v to_o believe_v scripture_n and_o plentiful_o to_o cyte_v the_o same_o 12._o moreover_o where_o the_o puritan_n action_n in_o england_n swaicth_v most_o as_o very_o usual_o in_o good_a town_n &_o great_a city_n it_o do_v there_o shall_v you_o find_v all_o their_o preacher_n of_o this_o humour_n they_o have_v nothing_o in_o their_o mouth_n but_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n the_o pure_a word_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o though_o their_o false_a &_o corrupt_a genevian_n translation_n be_v either_o part_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o word_n of_o god_n and_o they_o seem_v so_o far_o forth_o to_o confide_v to_o their_o english_a translation_n as_o that_o they_o affect_v to_o allege_v scripture_n only_o put_v one_o upon_o the_o neck_n of_o a_o other_o disdain_v as_o it_o be_v to_o quote_v any_o father_n or_o ancient_a writer_n for_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n or_o confirmation_n of_o their_o doctrine_n esteem_v their_o own_o exposition_n though_o never_o so_o vain_a and_o impertinent_a to_o be_v firm_a ground_n for_o build_v any_o thing_n thereon_o as_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 13._o and_o here_o i_o remember_v that_o not_o many_o month_n past_o peruse_v private_o with_o myself_o the_o foresay_a book_n of_o o._n o._n emanuel_n write_v by_o a_o protestant_n against_o the_o puritan_n puritan_n he_o among_o other_o thing_n discover_v unto_o the_o german_a with_o who_o he_o make_v his_o dialogue_n some_o 15._o several_a place_n of_o scripture_n so_o false_o and_o impertinent_o allege_v by_o puritan_n writer_n that_o the_o german_n be_v enforce_v to_o conclude_v thus_o i_o see_v already_o how_o ridiculous_a they_o be_v and_o very_o he_o that_o shall_v read_v the_o place_n allege_v &_o weigh_v they_o with_o any_o judgement_n will_v confess_v that_o they_o be_v ridiculous_o apply_v indeed_o and_o yet_o with_o their_o follower_n all_o must_v be_v scripture_n which_o they_o speak_v and_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n utter_v by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v it_o never_o so_o fantastical_o or_o fanatical_o apply_v 14._o well_o then_o to_o come_v to_o the_o conclusion_n when_o i_o see_v and_o consider_v all_o this_o and_o have_v weigh_v the_o same_o with_o that_o indifferency_n of_o judgement_n that_o i_o possible_o can_v as_o in_o a_o matter_n so_o much_o impot_v my_o soul_n it_o stand_v i_o upon_o i_o begin_v first_o to_o suspect_v this_o spirit_n of_o luther_n that_o aver_v so_o confident_o his_o assurance_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o true_a understanding_n thereof_o against_o a_o thousand_o cyprian_n a_o thousand_o augustine_n have_v no_o other_o ground_n thereof_o than_o his_o own_o particular_a persuasion_n to_o that_o effect_n which_o persuasion_n notwithstanding_o be_v and_o be_v in_o many_o point_n hold_v &_o prove_v to_o be_v erroneous_a by_o such_o as_o follow_v his_o breach_n and_o namely_o by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o which_o i_o see_v many_o that_o reject_v he_o to_o be_v as_o confident_a in_o their_o own_o persuasion_n and_o to_o aver_v for_o scripture_n and_o the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n whatsoever_o themselves_o do_v find_v out_o of_o the_o bible_n in_o their_o own_o sense_n and_o consequent_o i_o do_v infer_v as_o a_o most_o certain_a sequel_n that_o this_o profession_n of_o admit_v believe_v or_o follow_v scripture_n each_o man_n out_o of_o his_o own_o sense_n and_o judgement_n without_o any_o certain_a rule_n band_n or_o limit_v of_o exposition_n can_v be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v a_o man_n a_o christian_a catholic_a and_o no_o heretic_n for_o that_o it_o may_v open_v the_o way_n to_o be_v a_o heretic_n if_o his_o choice_n of_o interpretation_n be_v erreneous_a and_o thus_o much_o of_o this_o first_o consideration_n there_o follow_v the_o second_o the_o second_o consideration_n when_o almighty_a god_n of_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n &_o mercy_n after_o that_o immeasurable_a space_n of_o eternity_n wherein_o the_o bless_a trinity_n have_v reign_v &_o glorious_o begin_v triumph_v without_o any_o creature_n condescend_v to_o make_v a_o world_n and_o to_o create_v man_n and_o consequent_o vouchsafe_v thereby_o to_o institute_v a_o visible_a society_n company_n or_o church_n upon_o earth_n to_o acknowledge_v serve_v and_o honour_v he_o leave_v unto_o they_o sufficient_a direction_n whereby_o they_o may_v accomplish_v their_o service_n to_o he_o and_o thereby_o to_o arrive_v to_o the_o haven_n of_o happiness_n the_o same_o most_o wise_a god_n govern_v the_o say_a church_n for_o more_o than_o two_o thousand_o year_n without_o any_o write_a word_n that_o be_v now_o extant_a and_o after_o this_o large_a space_n when_o it_o please_v the_o divine_a majesty_n that_o the_o history_n of_o the_o world_n creation_n man_n propagation_n etc._n etc._n shall_v be_v commit_v to_o write_v for_o the_o benefit_n of_o succeed_a posterity_n he_o stir_v up_o that_o great_a governor_n of_o his_o people_n and_o prophet_n moses_n enable_v he_o with_o a_o great_a measure_n of_o his_o principal_n and_o prophetical_a spirit_n inspire_v he_o and_o then_o appoint_v he_o to_o compyle_v those_o famous_a book_n common_o call_v in_o greek_a pentateuch_n the_o first_o five_o book_n of_o the_o bible_n to_o wit_n genesis_n the_o book_n of_o creation_n exodus_fw-la the_o book_n of_o their_o departure_n out_o of_o egypt_n leviticus_fw-la the_o book_n of_o priest_n and_o sacrifice_n numeri_fw-la the_o book_n of_o number_v the_o people_n and_o deuteronomy_n the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n repetition_n 16._o in_o like_a manner_n the_o same_o god_n who_o pleasure_n be_v ever_o to_o be_v with_o the_o son_n of_o man_n hold_v the_o high_a hand_n of_o his_o divine_a providence_n over_o his_o church_n inspire_v likewise_o and_o appoint_v other_o also_o after_o the_o example_n of_o moses_n holy_a man_n to_o compose_v and_o write_v other_o book_n afterward_o upon_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a occasion_n offer_v as_o in_o the_o old_a tement_n may_v be_v see_v but_o yet_o we_o shall_v not_o find_v that_o any_o of_o those_o book_n of_o moses_n or_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v write_v by_o the_o other_o author_n be_v digest_v and_o collect_v in_o manner_n and_o method_n of_o orderly_a institution_n as_o in_o all_o other_o art_n and_o science_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v do_v but_o rather_o by_o piecemeal_o and_o by_o part_n as_o occasion_n fall_v out_o the_o author_n thereof_o principal_o intend_v a_o historical_a narration_n rather_o than_o any_o exact_a doctrinal_a instruction_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v this_o for_o that_o the_o ordinary_a institution_n and_o instruction_n of_o write_v every_o man_n how_o he_o ought_v to_o believe_v live_v fear_v and_o serve_v god_n be_v for_o all_o this_o time_n before_o the_o law_n write_v to_o be_v take_v only_o from_o the_o church_n by_o tradition_n of_o father_n to_o their_o
child_n and_o after_o the_o say_a law_n be_v write_v also_o every_o man_n and_o woman_n be_v not_o remit_v promiscuous_o hand_n over_o head_n to_o the_o read_n of_o those_o book_n but_o he_o be_v send_v to_o take_v his_o instruction_n and_o institution_n from_o the_o ordinary_a superior_n doctor_n governor_n of_o that_o church_n and_o these_o be_v to_o expound_v the_o law_n unto_o he_o for_o which_o direction_n and_o tradition_n we_o find_v this_o warrant_n and_o command_v yea_o prescribe_v authority_n ask_v thy_o father_n and_o 7._o they_o will_v tell_v thou_o thy_o elder_n and_o they_o will_v declare_v unto_o thou_o again_o the_o lip_n of_o the_o priest_n preserve_v knowledge_n and_o yet_o in_o a_o three_o place_n i_o know_v that_o abraham_n will_v demand_v and_o teach_v his_o son_n and_o househould_v 19_o that_o they_o walk_v in_o my_o way_n etc._n etc._n 17._o and_o now_o to_o come_v from_o the_o law_n to_o the_o gospel_n from_o moses_n unto_o christ_n and_o so_o to_o proceed_v orderly_o with_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n as_o god_n be_v no_o changeling_n but_o ever_o like_o himself_o even_o so_o the_o beginning_n proceed_v establish_v of_o the_o new_a christian_a faith_n and_o church_n be_v not_o much_o unlike_a if_o not_o altogether_o resemble_v the_o former_a for_o first_o this_o church_n be_v plant_v by_o our_o saviour_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o speedy_o by_o the_o industrious_a ministry_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n assist_v by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o yet_o neither_o the_o church_n nor_o the_o apostle_n the_o principal_a pillar_n of_o the_o church_n have_v as_o at_o this_o time_n any_o write_a instruction_n or_o methodical_a institution_n deliver_v unto_o they_o concern_v their_o teach_n preach_v or_o believe_v except_o only_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n deliver_v by_o tradition_n in_o the_o church_n as_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o subsequent_a consideration_n second_o the_o institution_n that_o they_o have_v they_o receive_v it_o by_o instruction_n from_o our_o saviour_n his_o mouth_n and_o from_o the_o immediate_a instinct_n suggestion_n and_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v promise_v by_o christ_n himself_o who_o can_v not_o lie_v nor_o deceive_v to_o assist_v the_o church_n continual_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n and_o by_o this_o institution_n and_o inspiration_n alone_o 20._o they_o teach_v and_o convert_v both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n institute_v church_n establish_v law_n and_o order_n of_o life_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o tradition_n only_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n before_o any_o thing_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v commit_v to_o writing_n and_o this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n for_o some_o year_n and_o that_o in_o the_o infancy_n and_o purity_n of_o christian_a religion_n as_o the_o protestant_n must_v perforce_o confess_v three_o when_o the_o wisdom_n of_o heaven_n think_v it_o expedient_a that_o something_o shall_v be_v write_v the_o first_o thing_n commit_v unto_o write_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v the_o gospel_n of_o s._n matthew_n and_o this_o be_v collect_v and_o digest_v in_o that_o very_a order_n as_o it_o be_v now_o present_v to_o the_o church_n and_o that_o some_o eight_o year_n after_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n then_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n mark_v some_o five_o year_n after_o that_o &_o then_o that_o of_o s._n luke_n write_v twelve_o year_n after_o the_o former_a wherein_o diverse_a thing_n omit_v in_o the_o other_o gospel_n of_o be_v record_v and_o last_o of_o all_o be_v write_v the_o gospel_n of_o s._n john_n contain_v in_o it_o many_o great_a and_o important_a matter_n which_o be_v not_o find_v in_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n and_o this_o be_v not_o write_v of_o 66._o year_n after_o the_o first_o visible_a christian_a church_n be_v plant_v and_o establish_v by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 18._o and_o now_o as_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v write_v upon_o particular_a scripture_n occasion_n so_o especial_o be_v this_o famous_a gospel_n of_o s._n john_n which_o be_v the_o very_a key_n open_v the_o door_n unto_o the_o understanding_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o particular_o upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o ebion_n and_o cerinthus_n their_o heresy_n which_o impugn_a the_o divinity_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n whereupon_o i_o do_v infer_v that_o for_o that_o which_o concern_v the_o new_a testament_n the_o church_n be_v for_o diverse_a year_n without_o any_o scripture_n at_o all_o and_o for_o 66._o year_n which_o be_v the_o age_n of_o a_o man_n the_o point_n relate_v by_o s._n john_n more_o than_o be_v utter_v in_o the_o other_o ghospell_n which_o be_v many_o and_o most_o important_a be_v receive_v and_o believe_v in_o the_o church_n by_o tradition_n only_o and_o now_o for_o conclusion_n of_o all_o i_o will_v demand_v but_o one_o thing_n of_o the_o protestant_n that_o make_v such_o show_n of_o appeal_n unto_o scripture_n and_o the_o primitive_a apostolical_a church_n &_o this_o be_v demand_v above_o 1400._o year_n ago_o by_o s._n irenaus_n before_o cite_v who_o live_v in_o the_o very_a next_o 4._o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n upon_o the_o very_a like_o occasion_n sineque_fw-la apostoli_fw-la scripturas_fw-la reliquissent_fw-la nobis_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o the_o apostle_n have_v leave_v unto_o we_o no_o scripture_n at_o all_o yet_o ought_v not_o we_o to_o follow_v that_o order_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o leave_v to_o those_o to_o who_o they_o commit_v their_o church_n so_o that_o holy_a bishop_n and_o martyr_n especial_o ought_v we_o not_o to_o follow_v that_o order_n of_o tradition_n since_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o save_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n continue_v for_o 2000_o year_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n and_o for_o many_o other_o year_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o in_o the_o breast_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n only_o without_o the_o help_n of_o any_o word_n write_v 19_o whereby_o we_o can_v but_o discern_v and_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o scripture_n or_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o so_o absolute_a necessary_a for_o the_o reveal_n of_o god_n his_o will_n unto_o man_n kind_n and_o the_o continue_n of_o man_n in_o that_o save_a knowledge_n of_o he_o but_o that_o his_o divine_a majesty_n may_v have_v propagate_v and_o preserve_v his_o doctrine_n and_o man_n in_o the_o truth_n by_o tradition_n only_o of_o word_n of_o mouth_n without_o any_o scripture_n at_o all_o if_o it_o have_v so_o please_v he_o as_o he_o do_v for_o many_o age_n and_o generation_n together_o both_o before_o the_o first_o great_a deluge_n by_o water_n in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o first_o patriarch_n until_o abraban_n his_o time_n who_o he_o choose_v for_o the_o head_n of_o his_o people_n as_o also_o afterwards_o when_o he_o direct_v the_o same_o people_n by_o like_a tradition_n as_o well_o in_o egypt_n where_o they_o remain_v in_o most_o cruel_a bondage_n for_o 400._o year_n as_o else_o where_o before_o moses_n write_v his_o forename_a book_n and_o the_o like_a he_o may_v have_v do_v with_o christian_n to_o the_o world_n great_a general_a consummation_n &_o last_o inundation_n by_o a_o flood_n of_o fire_n according_a to_o s._n irenaeus_n his_o sentence_n if_o he_o have_v list_v as_o have_v institute_v a_o more_o orderly_o exact_a and_o authorize_v church_n yea_o and_o have_v endue_v it_o with_o great_a privilege_n according_a to_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o new_a law_n above_o the_o old_a than_o he_o have_v do_v unto_o the_o former_a of_o the_o jew_n whereupon_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v by_o force_n of_o necessary_a consequence_n that_o the_o tradition_n of_o this_o church_n and_o pure_a authority_n thereof_o both_o in_o propound_v scripture_n unto_o we_o and_o discern_v the_o same_o which_o be_v true_o scripture_n and_o which_o be_v not_o as_o also_o for_o deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o mean_v thereof_o in_o their_o interpretation_n and_o exposition_n be_v much_o more_o to_o be_v respect_v by_o we_o than_o be_v that_o of_o the_o jew_n forasmuch_o as_o christ_n our_o saviour_n promise_v the_o continual_a assistance_n of_o his_o spirit_n unto_o this_o church_n and_o that_o in_o such_o measure_n as_o that_o it_o shall_v alone_o be_v able_a to_o withstand_v all_o the_o infernal_a power_n of_o satan_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n idest_fw-la the_o very_a entrance_n of_o all_o kind_n of_o error_n or_o here_o into_o it_o whatsoever_o 20._o these_o then_o that_o never_o so_o solemn_o and_o never_o so_o scripture_n confident_o profess_v that_o they_o for_o their_o part_n do_v believe_v and_o follow_v the_o scripture_n without_o due_a reference_n or_o respect_n to_o the_o church_n forsomuch_o as_o all_o sectary_n and_o heretikc_n that_o
out_o of_o the_o new_a all_o these_o i_o say_v be_v receive_v by_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a religion_n for_o canonical_a scripture_n in_o the_o sense_n before_o define_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o holy_a and_o divine_a book_n write_v by_o the_o finger_n of_o almighty_a god_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o those_o who_o be_v pen_n of_o a_o ready_a writer_n and_o consequent_o these_o of_o the_o second_o rank_n be_v of_o no_o less_o authority_n nor_o infallible_a verity_n than_o those_o of_o the_o first_o order_n for_o that_o in_o thing_n immediate_o and_o a_o like_a proceed_n from_o god_n his_o spirit_n there_o can_v not_o be_v less_o or_o more_o truth_n but_o all_o be_v of_o equal_a credit_n and_o so_o equal_o to_o be_v receive_v honour_v esteem_v and_o believe_v and_o thus_o much_o for_o the_o catholic_n who_o for_o a_o infallible_a ground_n and_o assure_a direction_n in_o this_o matter_n follow_v not_o any_o private_a err_a spirit_n but_o the_o never-deceiving_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o church_n and_o spouse_n of_o christ_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n her_o bridegroom_n have_v from_o all_o ancient_a time_n in_o former_a age_n in_o her_o counsel_n synod_n and_o ecclesiastical_a decree_n notify_v declare_v determine_v and_o establish_v the_o authority_n of_o these_o foresay_a book_n of_o the_o second_o rue_n for_o infallible_a and_o canonical_a that_o be_v to_o say_v declare_v they_o to_o be_v such_o and_o ever_o have_v be_v such_o to_o wit_n of_o most_o certain_a and_o infallible_a truth_n though_o sometime_o and_o among_o some_o man_n there_o have_v be_v doubt_n thereof_o and_o this_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o church_n to_o declare_v what_o be_v scripture_n but_o not_o to_o make_v it_o 30._o but_o as_o for_o the_o protestant_n i_o find_v such_o diversity_n and_o contrariety_n such_o opposition_n and_o contradiction_n among_o they_o that_o they_o seem_v unto_o i_o as_o man_n in_o tangle_a shall_v i_o say_v nay_o perplex_a and_o distract_v not_o know_v what_o to_o do_v or_o whither_o to_o fly_v or_o which_o way_n to_o turn_v they_o in_o this_o great_a business_n of_o discern_v and_o admit_v scripture_n and_o sure_o the_o reason_n of_o all_o this_o misery_n arise_v from_o themselves_o alone_o perditio_fw-la tua_fw-la ex_fw-la te_fw-la it_o be_v speak_v of_o israells_n transgression_n but_o never_o more_o true_o verify_v they_o of_o heretical_a innovation_n 13._o for_o that_o these_o miserable_a deceive_v and_o deceive_a soul_n leave_v the_o high_a road_n of_o the_o church_n prescription_n can_v never_o possible_o attain_v unto_o any_o infallible_a direction_n one_o follow_v one_o thing_n and_o another_o another_o and_o that_o in_o this_o main_a point_n of_o the_o scripture_n importance_n quot_fw-la capita_fw-la tot_fw-la sententia_fw-la every_o man_n will_v be_v a_o chooser_n every_o one_o will_v show_v himself_o a_o heretic_n whence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o god_n word_n be_v wretched_o abuse_v blaspheme_v reject_v scripture_n by_o some_o rend_v and_o tear_v in_o piece_n by_o other_o and_o that_o which_o on_o god_n his_o part_n be_v ordain_v and_o prepare_v for_o they_o to_o be_v a_o savour_n of_o life_n unto_o life_n become_v by_o their_o misusage_n of_o it_o a_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n and_o to_o speak_v all_o in_o a_o word_n through_o the_o fault_n of_o their_o own_o perverse_a will_n concur_v and_o god_n his_o most_o righteous_a judgement_n follow_v they_o hard_o at_o the_o heel_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o 16._o that_o word_n which_o be_v give_v as_o a_o pillar_n of_o fire_n to_o direct_v and_o lighten_v they_o into_o all_o verity_n be_v turn_v into_o a_o pillar_n of_o smoke_n so_o darken_v and_o infatuate_a their_o understanding_n that_o they_o rush_v headlong_o into_o all_o kind_n of_o heresy_n 31._o this_o be_v well_o peceive_v by_o his_o majesty_n of_o england_n according_a to_o that_o notable_a apprehension_n of_o his_o noble_a nature_n he_o as_o it_o be_v out_o of_o a_o pious_a zealous_a and_o religious_a disposition_n though_o wrong_o miss_v by_o some_o timeseruing_a and_o statize_v theologue_n who_o be_v somewhat_o to_o near_o unto_o his_o royal_a person_n write_v as_o in_o part_n before_o you_o have_v hear_v concern_v the_o scripture_n and_o it_o be_v in_o effect_n as_o follow_v as_o for_o the_o scripture_n no_o man_n doubt_v i_o will_v 36._o believe_v they_o but_o even_o for_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la i_o hold_v they_o in_o the_o same_o account_n that_o the_o ancient_n do_v they_o be_v still_o print_v and_o bind_v with_o our_o bibles_n and_o public_o read_v in_o our_o church_n i_o reverence_v they_o as_o write_n of_o holy_a and_o good_a man_n but_o since_o they_o be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o canon_n we_o account_v they_o to_o be_v secundae_fw-la lectionis_fw-la or_o ordinis_fw-la which_o be_v bellarmine_n own_o distinction_n and_o therefore_o not_o sufficient_a whereupon_o alone_o to_o ground_v any_o article_n of_o faith_n except_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o some_o other_o place_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n thus_o write_v his_o majesty_n out_o of_o a_o good_a meaning_n no_o doubt_n and_o therefore_o great_a pity_n it_o be_v that_o so_o virtuous_a and_o religious_a a_o hart_n shall_v err_v or_o conceit_n amiss_o but_o who_o shall_v determine_v whether_o these_o scripture_n here_o call_v apocrypha_fw-la which_o be_v those_o of_o the_o second_o order_n before_o mention_v be_v canonical_a scripture_n or_o not_o herely_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o question_n his_o majesty_n here_o upon_o the_o suggestion_n of_o his_o domestical_a minister_n of_o england_n say_v no_o but_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o christendom_n say_v yea_o as_o do_v also_o the_o present_a and_o her_o judgement_n be_v in_o this_o case_n above_o all_o earthly_a authority_n be_v to_o strike_v the_o stroke_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n let_v the_o word_n of_o my_o sovereign_n in_o all_o otherthing_n stand_v as_o the_o strong_a mountain_n that_o may_v not_o be_v remove_v and_o as_o the_o law_n of_o the_o mede_n and_o persian_n which_o can_v never_o be_v alter_v only_o let_v not_o my_o lord_n the_o king_n be_v displease_v with_o his_o servant_n and_o 15._o subject_a in_o this_o if_o his_o word_n may_v not_o stand_v but_o must_v of_o necessity_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n as_o be_v countermand_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o can_v nor_o will_v not_o be_v disauthorize_v by_o the_o word_n of_o any_o mortal_a man_n 32._o it_o be_v suggest_v to_o his_o majesty_n but_o sinister_a be_v the_o information_n that_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n in_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 4._o hold_v the_o former_a distinction_n of_o secundae_fw-la lectionis_fw-la or_o ordinis_fw-la and_o that_o in_o his_o majesty_n sense_n but_o it_o be_v nothing_o so_o in_o the_o sense_n that_o here_o be_v set_v down_o by_o his_o majesty_n to_o wit_n that_o this_o second_o order_n of_o book_n be_v of_o less_o authority_n than_o the_o first_o for_o albeit_o bellarmine_n do_v as_o before_o have_v be_v say_v divide_v all_o the_o book_n that_o be_v in_o the_o bible_n into_o three_o rank_n or_o order_n first_o into_o such_o as_o be_v never_o call_v in_o question_n by_o any_o catholic_a man_n second_o into_o such_o as_o notwithstanding_o sometime_o have_v be_v doubt_v of_o by_o some_o yet_o be_v afterward_o admit_v by_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n and_o three_o and_o last_o into_o apocrypha_fw-la scripture_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o either_o call_v those_o book_n of_o the_o second_o order_n apocrypha_fw-la or_o secundae_fw-la lectionis_fw-la as_o here_o be_v set_v down_o nor_o yet_o secundi_fw-la ordinis_fw-la in_o his_o majesty_n sense_n as_o though_o they_o be_v less_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o of_o less_o authority_n than_o those_o of_o the_o first_o rank_n but_o rather_o he_o aver_v the_o quite_o contrary_a that_o they_o be_v all_o of_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o authority_n and_o therefore_o whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o suggest_v this_o place_n of_o bellarmine_n unto_o his_o majesty_n he_o deal_v not_o well_o and_o sincere_o therein_o with_o his_o prince_n and_o he_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o law_n of_o conscience_n and_o by_o the_o law_n of_o a_o subject_n towards_o his_o sovereign_n to_o acknowledge_v his_o error_n be_v it_o of_o malice_n or_o of_o ignorance_n commit_v and_o humble_o prostrate_a upon_o his_o knee_n to_o crave_v pardon_n for_o this_o abuse_n of_o his_o lord_n and_o ever_o after_o to_o beware_v how_o he_o presume_v to_o whisper_v any_o such_o untruth_n palpable_a and_o notorious_a falsehood_n into_o the_o ear_n of_o his_o dread_a lord_n and_o king_n 33._o but_o now_o forasmuch_o as_o this_o point_n of_o deny_v the_o infallible_a authority_n and_o irrefragable_a credit_n of_o any_o the_o least_o book_n part_n or_o parcel_n of_o
scripture_n be_v so_o heinous_a and_o temerarious_a a_o sin_n as_o before_o we_o have_v touch_v yea_o and_o that_o commit_v against_o the_o bless_a spirit_n that_o breathe_v they_o all_o and_o stream_v these_o pure_a water_n of_o life_n from_o one_o and_o the_o same_o live_n and_o life-giving_a fountain_n let_v we_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n in_o timore_fw-la &_o tremore_fw-la even_o with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a since_o the_o horror_n of_o the_o sin_n commit_v require_v this_o at_o our_o hand_n examine_v a_o little_a in_o what_o a_o dangerous_a nay_o damnable_a state_n the_o protestant_n of_o our_o day_n do_v stand_v in_o about_o their_o disauthorize_v of_o scripture_n not_o in_o blot_v out_o one_o book_n alone_o but_o in_o wipe_v out_o many_o together_o from_o the_o number_n of_o the_o sincere_a canon_n and_o let_v we_o further_o consider_v in_o what_o a_o gaze_n and_o maze_n they_o stand_v be_v uncertain_a of_o their_o ground_n also_o what_o they_o ought_v to_o believe_v hold_v or_o determine_v after_o they_o have_v lose_v the_o sure_a and_o stable-staying_a anchor_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n in_o this_o behalf_n 34._o as_o for_o example_n the_o catholic_n do_v believe_v all_o ago_o those_o book_n before_o mention_v which_o be_v secundi_fw-la ordinis_fw-la in_o bellarmine_n both_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n to_o be_v canonical_a scripture_n of_o infallible_a truth_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o church_n for_o that_o she_o in_o her_o ancient_a counsel_n have_v admit_v the_o same_o for_o such_o at_o least_o wise_a since_o the_o 47._o canon_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n be_v enact_v wherein_o s._n augustine_n himself_o be_v present_a and_o subscribe_v to_o the_o say_a canon_n which_o canon_n aver_v they_o to_o be_v book_n of_o true_a canonical_a scripture_n among_o which_o for_o example_n go_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o of_o this_o my_o purpose_n be_v at_o this_o present_a to_o make_v some_o particular_a consideration_n for_o that_o the_o time_n within_o who_o limyt_n i_o be_o strait_v will_v not_o easy_o permit_v i_o to_o treat_v of_o all_o 35._o this_o epistle_n than_o be_v believe_v of_o the_o catholic_n to_o be_v a_o true_a part_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o write_v by_o s._n paul_n as_o well_o as_o the_o rest_n for_o that_o it_o be_v so_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n in_o old_a time_n as_o namely_o in_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n the_o 59_o canon_n and_o after_o that_o again_o in_o the_o three_o council_n brew_v of_o carthage_n before_o mention_v and_o cite_v in_o diverse_a other_o counsel_n and_o namely_o in_o the_o first_o nicene_n who_o authority_n his_o majesty_n of_o england_n offer_v to_o stand_v unto_o in_o the_o first_o ephesine_n and_o of_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n in_o all_o the_o grand_a parliament_n of_o the_o world_n general_n counsel_n it_o be_v receive_v and_o acknowledge_v as_o the_o genuine_a epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n but_o now_o in_o these_o our_o unhappy_a time_n matter_n be_v rake_v into_o controversy_n again_o and_o that_o after_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v in_o diverse_a synod_n establish_v the_o thing_n and_o every_o sort_n of_o sectary_n will_v needs_o adhere_v to_o their_o own_o brainsick_a fancy_n and_o will_v prefer_v their_o own_o private_a opinion_n before_o the_o public_a determination_n and_o resolution_n of_o the_o church_n among_o all_o other_o as_o the_o captain_n and_o ringleader_n of_o the_o rest_n upstart_n martin_n luther_n but_o it_o be_v after_o he_o have_v break_v vow_n and_o cloister_n and_o marry_v a_o nun_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o censure_v the_o matter_n in_o his_o prologue_n to_o that_o epistle_n reverse_v as_o erroneous_a the_o grave_n and_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o so_o many_o general_n counsel_n direct_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n his_o word_n be_v these_o this_o epistle_n say_v luther_n be_v neither_o write_v by_o s._n paul_n nor_o by_o any_o other_o apostle_n and_o it_o contain_v in_o it_o some_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o evangelicall_a and_o apostolical_a doctrine_n this_o be_v luther_n heady_a and_o giddy_a censure_n of_o this_o admirable_a parcel_n of_o holy_a writ_n will_v any_o man_n hereafter_o so_o desperate_o cast_v away_o himself_o in_o credit_v he_o who_o thus_o discredit_v god_n word_n 36._o with_o luther_n in_o this_o point_n conspire_v all_o the_o learned_a lutheran_n about_o the_o disauthorize_a of_o this_o holy_a writ_n and_o namely_o joannes_n brentius_n in_o his_o confession_n of_o wittenberg_n cap._n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la scriptura_fw-la and_o the_o four_o magdeburgian_n good_a fellow_n in_o their_o first_o loud-lying_a century_n the_o 2._o book_n the_o four_o chapter_n col._n 55._o and_o that_o audacious_a and_o impudent_a examyner_n and_o censurer_n of_o all_o the_o learning_n and_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n i_o mean_v martinus_n kemni●ius_n in_o his_o examen_fw-la of_o the_o 4._o session_n of_o that_o famous_a council_n of_o trent_n and_o upon_o this_o these_o man_n adventure_v all_o their_o soul_n will_v any_o man_n suffer_v himself_o any_o long_a to_o be_v deceive_v by_o such_o pure_a reformer_n nay_o rather_o impure_a impostor_n but_o john_n calvin_n the_o next_o succeed_a reformer_n of_o these_o reformer_n be_v to_o begin_v a_o new_a fect_n of_o his_o own_o head_n he_o think_v it_o most_o convenient_a to_o oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o lutheran_n in_o this_o point_n and_o therefore_o in_o his_o first_o institution_n print_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1554._o cap._n 8._o §_o 216._o he_o prove_v that_o the_o lutheran_n do_v err_v in_o this_o point_n in_o hold_v it_o not_o to_o be_v a_o apostolical_a epistle_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v write_v by_o s._n paul_n but_o rather_o perhaps_o by_o bannaby_n or_o luke_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o the_o same_o institution_n chap._n 10._o §_o 83._o and_o chap_n 16._o §_o 25._o upon_o which_o scruple_n raise_v by_o catholic_n m._n calvin_n the_o caluinian_a minister_n at_o a_o certain_a conventicle_n of_o they_o hold_v at_o poysy_n in_o france_n in_o the_o year_n 1562._o do_v in_o the_o three_o article_n of_o their_o confession_n set_v down_o this_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n to_o be_v divine_a scripture_n but_o yet_o incerti_fw-la authoris_fw-la they_o leave_v the_o author_n of_o it_o to_o be_v doubtful_a and_o this_o be_v a_o subtle_a trick_n peculiar_a to_o calvin_n his_o invention_n to_o wit_n to_o differ_v from_o other_o protestant_n and_o yet_o not_o full_o to_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_n but_o to_o have_v something_o singular_a to_o himself_o as_o you_o see_v in_o this_o controversy_n and_o it_o may_v be_v prove_v in_o many_o other_o 37._o and_o here_o now_o i_o will_v demand_v upon_o what_o warrant_n in_o the_o world_n do_v john_n calvin_n and_o his_o sectary_n contradict_v and_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o luther_n and_o his_o follower_n in_o this_o point_n certain_a it_o be_v he_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o catholic_n at_o a●l_n and_o it_o seem_v then_o nay_o it_o be_v more_o than_o certain_a he_o follow_v a_o several_a way_n and_o strain_n by_o himself_o and_o have_v no_o ground_n or_o guide_v therein_o but_o his_o own_o will_n judgement_n choice_n and_o election_n 38._o the_o like_a dispute_n i_o may_v propose_v about_o other_o book_n or_o part_n of_o scripture_n and_o namely_o concern_v the_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n and_o the_o apocalypse_n the_o former_a whereof_o be_v reject_v both_o by_o luther_n and_o all_o the_o forename_a lutheran_n writer_n brentius_n kemnitius_n and_o the_o magdeburgian_o all_o these_o avouch_v it_o to_o be_v no_o scripture_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v assert_v and_o asscuer_v by_o calvin_n and_o the_o caluinist_n for_o genuine_a and_o undoubted_a scripture_n the_o second_o which_o be_v that_o mystical_a book_n of_o the_o revelation_n compose_v by_o that_o high-soaring_a and_o egale-winged_n john_n s._n john_n syrname_v the_o divine_a this_o book_n though_o it_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n discredit_v and_o caluinist_n disauthorize_v from_o canon_n by_o luther_n and_o most_o of_o his_o follower_n as_o namely_o by_o brentius_n &_o kemnitius_n in_o the_o place_n before_o allege_v yet_o be_v the_o same_o book_n eager_o defend_v against_o they_o by_o calvin_n and_o his_o follower_n and_o good_a reason_n have_v they_o in_o their_o judgement_n for_o it_o forasmuch_o as_o thence_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o demonstrate_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n and_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o seven_o hill_v city_n &_o i_o know_v not_o upon_o what_o imagination_n beside_o and_o this_o consideration_n may_v be_v presume_v to_o have_v be_v a_o especial_a motive_n unto_o those_o chief_a lutheran_n the_o magdeburgian_o cause_v they_o to_o forsake_v both_o their_o father_n luther_n and_o their_o lutheran_n brethren_n in_o this_o cause_n and_o to_o
paul_n to_o the_o hebrew_n compare_v it_o &_o be_v there_o no_o danger_n of_o cut_v and_o wound_v and_o kill_v by_o this_o sword_n if_o it_o be_v unwary_o handle_v scriptura_fw-la sancta_fw-la say_v s._n ambrose_n attento_fw-it animo_fw-la legenda_fw-la ne_fw-la quis_fw-la have_v cum_fw-la legerit_fw-la cap._n quasi_fw-la pver_fw-la macheram_fw-la tractare_fw-la per_fw-la injantiam_fw-la fortiora_fw-la arma_fw-la nesciret_fw-la magic_a vulnus_fw-la ex_fw-la imprudentia_fw-la quam_fw-la salutem_fw-la ex_fw-la lectione_n sentiret_fw-la infirmos_fw-la enim_fw-la tela_fw-la sua_fw-la vulnerant_fw-la nec_fw-la potest_fw-la bene_fw-la uti_fw-la armis_fw-la qui_fw-la ea_fw-la far_o non_fw-la noverit_fw-la sacred_a scripture_n must_v be_v heedful_o read_v lest_o any_o man_n that_o read_v they_o be_v unskilful_a to_o handle_v these_o strong_a weapon_n as_o a_o child_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o infancy_n skill_v not_o how_o to_o handle_v a_o sword_n and_o consequent_o rather_o receive_v and_o incur_v the_o wound_n of_o damnation_n through_o his_o imprudency_n abuse_v they_o than_o the_o help_n of_o salvation_n by_o the_o right_a read_n of_o they_o for_o the_o weak_a be_v wound_v by_o their_o own_o weapon_n neither_o can_v he_o use_v weapon_n well_o who_o know_v not_o to_o wield_v they_o 43._o it_o be_v excellent_o observe_v by_o theophilact_n and_o it_o be_v the_o common_a observation_n of_o all_o the_o father_n that_o when_o the_o apostle_n curiousl_o inquire_v nondum_fw-la enim_fw-la ex_fw-la alto_fw-mi spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la repleti_fw-la for_o as_o yet_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v come_v upon_o none_o of_o they_o afterthe_a knowledge_n of_o the_o day_n and_o hour_n of_o judgement_n when_o the_o time_n precise_o shall_v be_v occultat_fw-la christus_fw-la non_fw-la ignorat_fw-la diem_fw-la he_o hide_v the_o day_n he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o day_n let_v calvin_n and_o his_o sectary_n blaspheme_v as_o long_o as_o they_o will_v against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n sacred_a humanity_n and_o the_o reason_n render_v of_o this_o ne_o cognitio_fw-la diei_fw-la iudicij_fw-la tanquam_fw-la machera_fw-la etc._n etc._n lest_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n reveal_v by_o christ_n unto_o his_o apostle_n shall_v prove_v a_o sword_n put_v into_o a_o child_n hand_n thus_o than_o you_o see_v both_o by_o all_o former_a example_n and_o especial_o by_o this_o last_o of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o what_o a_o dangerous_a way_n the_o path_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o walk_v in_o if_o we_o be_v not_o wary_o guide_v therein_o for_o as_o by_o the_o native_a and_o genuine_a interpretation_n of_o god_n sacred_a epistle_n as_o s._n gregory_n style_v holy_a write_v man_n be_v direct_v aright_o through_o the_o surge_n of_o the_o sea_n of_o this_o world_n to_o arrive_v secure_o at_o the_o haven_n of_o salvation_n even_o so_o by_o the_o erroneous_a and_o false_a exposition_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n man_n be_v deceitful_o misguide_v &_o wrongful_o lead_v as_o it_o be_v blindfolded_a into_o the_o brake_n and_o brier_n of_o pestiferous_a and_o pernicious_a heresy_n to_o the_o everlasting_a damnation_n both_o of_o the_o beginner_n and_o follower_n 44._o s._n paul_n call_v the_o scripture_n the_o savour_n of_o life_n unto_o life_n and_o the_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n which_o as_o it_o be_v true_a in_o that_o place_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o save_n of_o some_o and_o the_o perish_v of_o other_o so_o it_o be_v most_o true_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o right_n sense_v of_o it_o by_o the_o son_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n who_o follow_v catholic_a interpretation_n and_o the_o wrong_n interpret_n of_o it_o by_o other_o as_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o adhere_v unto_o false_a exposition_n and_o heretical_a innovation_n 45._o tertullian_n of_o opinion_n that_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o be_v so_o dispose_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o they_o shall_v prescript_n minister_v matter_n unto_o heretic_n his_o reason_n be_v because_o he_o read_v in_o scripture_n that_o there_o must_v be_v heretic_n which_o without_o scripture_n can_v not_o be_v and_o yet_o his_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o christ_n prophetical_a prediction_n be_v no_o cause_n of_o judas_n treason_n but_o rather_o man_v temerarious_a presumption_n upon_o god_n word_n and_o heresy_n precipitate_a intrusion_n into_o his_o book_n by_o erroneous_a and_o false_a conceit_a opinion_n be_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o all_o error_n and_o heresy_n 46._o s._n augustine_n write_v to_o consentius_n do_v excellent_o discover_v the_o cause_n of_o heresy_n in_o these_o word_n omnes_fw-la haeretici_fw-la scripture_n as_o sibt_fw-mi videntur_fw-la scrutari_fw-la cum_fw-la suos_fw-la potiùs_fw-la scrutentur_fw-la errores_fw-la &_o per_fw-la hoc_fw-la non_fw-la quòd_fw-la eas_fw-la contemnant_fw-la sed_fw-la quód_fw-la eas_fw-la non_fw-la intelligant_fw-la haeretici_fw-la fiant_fw-la all_o heretic_n to_o seem_v to_o themselves_o to_o follow_v scripture_n when_o in_o very_a deed_n they_o rather_o follow_v their_o own_o error_n and_o hereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o be_v make_v heretic_n not_o for_o that_o they_o contemn_v the_o scripture_n but_o for_o that_o they_o understand_v they_o not_o 47._o but_o hear_v i_o think_v i_o hear_v the_o heretic_n object_n answer_v as_o i_o have_v hear_v they_o often_o while_o i_o do_v frequent_v their_o heretical_a conventicle_n and_o sermon_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v easy_a to_o be_v understand_v that_o the_o word_n be_v near_o we_o not_o far_o from_o we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o lantern_n unto_o our_o step_n and_o a_o light_n unto_o our_o path_n and_o thus_o will_v they_o fly_v through_o the_o law_n and_o the_o psalm_n the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n as_o vincentius_n note_v of_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n to_o prove_v the_o facility_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v 8._o and_o grant_v it_o to_o be_v true_a in_o respect_n of_o sundry_a passage_n of_o holy_a 35._o writ_n where_o the_o lamb_n may_v wade_v as_o well_o as_o the_o elephant_n may_v swymme_n yet_o that_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v hard_a intricate_a mystical_a and_o very_o apt_a to_o be_v mistake_v beside_o many_o proof_n and_o those_o most_o pregnant_a that_o may_v be_v bring_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n the_o experience_n of_o our_o unfortunate_a day_n do_v most_o clear_o evince_v 48._o for_o otherwise_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o all_o christendom_n be_v in_o a_o uproar_n about_o the_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n how_o grow_v so_o many_o contention_n among_o the_o learned_a at_o this_o day_n why_o have_v we_o so_o desperate_a and_o obstinate_a heresy_n ground_v as_o the_o heretic_n think_v upon_o such_o apparent_a and_o pregnant_a place_n of_o scripture_n as_o that_o the_o author_n thereof_o be_v deceive_v themselves_o and_o deceive_a other_o by_o the_o scripture_n will_v rather_o desperate_o choose_v to_o loose_v their_o life_n &_o their_o soul_n together_o then_o to_o forgo_v and_o abjure_v their_o opinion_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n which_o once_o by_o the_o least_o apparent_a show_n of_o scripture_n they_o have_v begin_v to_o defend_v these_o man_n though_o never_o so_o learned_a never_o so_o wise_a never_o so_o moral_o virtuous_a yet_o be_v they_o deceive_v shall_v i_o say_v by_o scripture_n nay_o rather_o they_o wilful_o by_o their_o own_o heretical_a choice_n against_o the_o know_a interpretation_n of_o catholic_a church_n roman_a church_n ancient_a church_n abuse_v the_o scripture_n and_o so_o be_v deceive_v entangle_v blindfolded_a and_o this_o they_o can_v never_o be_v bring_v unto_o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o easy_a that_o a_o private_a spirit_n may_v interpret_v without_o the_o public_a spirit_n and_o interpretation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o this_o s._n augustine_n allude_v say_v multis_fw-la &_o multiplicibus_fw-la obscuritatibus_fw-la &_o ambiguitatibus_fw-la decipiuntur_fw-la qui_fw-la temerè_fw-la legunt_fw-la scripturas_fw-la 6._o aliud_fw-la pro_fw-la alto_fw-mi sentientes_fw-la they_o which_o do_v rash_o read_v scripture_n be_v deceive_v with_o many_o and_o sundry_a obscuritye_n and_o ambiguity_n take_v one_o sense_n for_o another_o which_o will_v not_o be_v if_o all_o be_v easy_a in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o all_o sectary_n do_v pretend_v 49._o the_o understanding_n then_o and_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o very_a main_n point_n which_o import_v and_o importune_v we_o for_o our_o salvation_n and_o in_o seek_v out_o this_o if_o ever_o by_o seek_v we_o mean_v to_o find_v it_o we_o must_v first_o abandon_v our_o own_o judgement_n and_o particular_a election_n and_o embrace_v the_o common_a &_o public_a judgement_n of_o christ_n his_o church_n this_o be_v the_o interpreter_n of_o the_o scripture_n this_o be_v the_o controller_n and_o guider_n of_o all_o certain_a and_o sure_a exposition_n expetitque_fw-la hic_fw-la sensus_fw-la certae_fw-la interpretationis_fw-la gubernaculum_fw-la to_o cite_v the_o whole_a sentence_n out_o of_o tertullian_n this_o
sense_n require_v the_o 9_o stay_n of_o a_o sure_a interpretation_n and_o this_o be_v only_o that_o which_o can_v make_v a_o man_n a_o true_a catholic_a christian._n 50._o s._n augustine_n among_o those_o manifold_a conflict_n which_o he_o have_v with_o the_o manichee_n concern_v the_o catholic_a church_n &_o her_o authority_n open_o and_o ingenuous_o profess_v church_n unto_o the_o say_a manichee_n that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v believe_v the_o gospel_n if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v not_o move_v he_o thereunto_o whence_o i_o do_v observe_v that_o if_o we_o receive_v the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o church_n for_o that_o the_o gospel_n will_v not_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v the_o gospel_n unless_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n do_v tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v the_o gospel_n then_o follow_v it_o necessary_o for_o the_o argument_n be_v draw_v àmaiore_fw-la ad_fw-la minus_fw-la that_o much_o more_o shall_v we_o depend_v and_o rely_v upon_o the_o church_n and_o take_v from_o she_o the_o true_a sense_n meaning_n and_o exposition_n of_o the_o gospel_n from_o who_o we_o have_v believe_v and_o receive_v that_o it_o be_v the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o say_v the_o same_o father_n to_o his_o friend_n honoratn_n multò_fw-la facilius_fw-la mihi_fw-la persuaderem_fw-la christo_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la credendum_fw-la quam_fw-la de_fw-la illo_fw-la quidquam_fw-la nisi_fw-la ab_fw-la his_fw-la per_fw-la quos_fw-la credidissem_fw-la esse_fw-la credendum_fw-la i_o shall_v much_o more_o easy_o persuade_v myself_o that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n at_o all_o then_o that_o any_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v learn_v concern_v he_o of_o any_o man_n but_o only_o of_o those_o who_o i_o be_v teach_v to_o believe_v in_o christ._n can_v any_o thing_n be_v speak_v more_o effectual_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n since_o this_o be_v the_o sole_a cause_n of_o his_o believe_v the_o gospel_n this_o be_v the_o only_a motive_n of_o his_o embrace_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n 51._o but_o now_o whether_o protestant_n do_v follow_v this_o trade_n and_o way_n of_o true_a catholicisme_n in_o their_o sense_n and_o understand_v of_o scripture_n that_o be_v not_o hard_a to_o discover_v for_o when_o we_o come_v to_o particular_a controversy_n and_o to_o join_v issue_n together_o and_o that_o they_o and_o their_o adversary_n do_v allege_v scripture_n and_o expound_v the_o same_o then_o do_v it_o scripture_n appear_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n who_o follow_v a_o private_a interpretation_n and_o who_o adher_v to_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n exposition_n for_o the_o roman_a catholic_a first_o desyring_n to_o find_v out_o the_o truth_n and_o then_o willing_a to_o embrace_v nothing_o but_o the_o truth_n reflect_v upon_o the_o former_a interpretation_n of_o ancient_a church_n when_o the_o present_a controversy_n be_v not_o yet_o in_o hand_n and_o consequent_o when_o the_o exposition_n can_v be_v so_o much_o as_o in_o any_o semblable_a reason_n suspect_v to_o be_v wrest_v or_o wrong_o interpret_v by_o man_n of_o those_o age_n who_o neither_o fear_v nor_o favour_v any_o party_n but_o must_v needs_o be_v according_a to_o the_o common_a meaning_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n in_o those_o ancient_a time_n and_o this_o interpretation_n which_o the_o protestant_n also_o in_o some_o of_o their_o better_a humour_n do_v admit_v for_o good_a the_o catholic_a follow_v &_o upon_o this_o as_o upon_o the_o rock_n of_o god_n his_o word_n true_o sense_v by_o the_o church_n he_o stay_v himself_o &_o build_v his_o religion_n 52._o now_o the_o protestant_a being_n guilty_a in_o his_o conscience_n and_o know_v well_o that_o antiquity_n detest_v and_o have_v already_o anathematise_v his_o heresy_n he_o by_o all_o mean_v possible_a by_o vociferation_n and_o exclamation_n seek_v to_o extenuate_v the_o authority_n of_o this_o church_n much_o like_a to_o the_o thief_n or_o malefactor_n who_o arrest_v by_o the_o law_n to_o abide_v the_o trial_n of_o the_o same_o begin_v to_o rail_v &_o exclaim_v against_o his_o lawful_a ludge_n and_o iurour_n and_o then_o in_o his_o imagination_n he_o devise_v certain_a chimaera_n and_o idea_n of_o his_o church_n in_o former_a time_n in_o the_o air_n of_o his_o own_o brain_n which_o lineal_o say_v he_o but_o god_n know_v how_o for_o he_o know_v not_o descend_v unto_o luther_n and_o calvin_n etc._n etc._n and_o from_o these_o people_n partly_o and_o partly_o from_o himself_o frame_v the_o protestant_n his_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n and_o upon_o this_o foundation_n buildeeh_o he_o all_o his_o religion_n of_o his_o own_o device_n 53._o and_o albeit_o all_o father_n do_v not_o always_o agree_v in_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o sense_n and_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n for_o that_o there_o may_v be_v be_v diverse_a sense_n of_o one_o &_o the_o self_n same_o place_n of_o scripture_n as_o before_o you_o have_v hear_v at_o large_a yet_o do_v the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o run_v and_o strike_v upon_o the_o string_n the_o tongue_n and_o pen_n i_o mean_v of_o these_o ancient_a wortny_n of_o the_o church_n that_o all_o the_o variety_n that_o ever_o i_o can_v find_v yet_o among_o they_o sounded_z forth_o a_o heavenly_a harmony_n and_o neither_o iar_v not_o yet_o be_v dissonant_n from_o scripture_n verity_n or_o faith_n analogy_n so_o far_o be_v the_o church_n unity_n from_o all_o contrariety_n and_o very_o this_o diversity_n of_o antiquity_n in_o the_o execution_n of_o scripture_n without_o all_o repugnancy_n or_o any_o contrariety_n be_v no_o small_a motive_n unto_o i_o to_o embrace_v the_o present_a roman_a catholic_a religion_n which_o all_o so_o i_o find_v in_o they_o for_o i_o can_v not_o but_o conclude_v that_o as_o one_o spirit_n breathe_v out_o these_o scripture_n intend_v all_o these_o sense_n so_o the_o same_o spirit_n guide_v all_o and_o therefore_o no_o marvel_n that_o neither_o the_o age_n wherein_o such_o father_n live_v nor_o any_o succeed_a century_n of_o the_o church_n reprehend_v their_o exposition_n for_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o spirit_n ever_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n and_o thereby_o they_o know_v that_o such_o variety_n bree_v no_o contrariety_n whilst_o one_o father_n sense_v the_o scripture_n literal_o another_o allegorical_o and_o another_o mystical_o or_o anagogical_o but_o yet_o all_o to_o a_o pious_a sense_n and_o with_o no_o obstinate_a proteruity_n or_o animosity_n against_o that_o which_o the_o church_n do_v hold_v or_o determine_v for_o true_a 54._o and_o now_o to_o come_v unto_o some_o particular_a exposition_n or_o scripture_n by_o the_o father_n let_v we_o instance_n in_o the_o age_n of_o church_n s._n augustine_n for_o the_o protestant_n be_v wont_a to_o grant_v that_o the_o true_a church_n flourish_v in_o his_o time_n and_o his_o majesty_n also_o condescend_v to_o extend_v the_o trial_n of_o controversy_n to_o his_o time_n and_o somewhat_o further_o the_o same_o father_n write_v of_o this_o church_n we_o have_v former_o mention_v prove_v the_o 14._o same_o first_o to_o be_v visible_a and_o obvious_a unto_o every_o man_n eye_n against_o the_o assertion_n of_o the_o protestant_n invisibility_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o he_o confirm_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n register_v by_o the_o evangelist_n matth._n 5._o a_o city_n upon_o a_o hill_n can_v be_v hide_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n can_v be_v invisible_a which_o be_v many_o time_n repeat_v by_o the_o same_o father_n 2._o to_o this_o effect_n as_o also_o forth_o of_o those_o word_n of_o the_o psalmist_n psal._n 18._o in_o sole_a posuit_fw-la tabernaculum_fw-la suum_fw-la he_o put_v his_o tabernacle_n in_o the_o sun_n that_o be_v he_o place_v his_o church_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v see_v of_o all_o man_n 55._o in_o like_a manner_n the_o same_o father_n apply_v and_o expound_v those_o word_n of_o christ_n matth._n 5_o about_o the_o visible_a candle_n place_v on_o the_o candlestick_n to_o signify_v the_o visibility_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n cry_v out_o against_o they_o qui_fw-la contra_fw-la lucernam_fw-la in_o candelabro_fw-la positamoculos_fw-la claudant_fw-la who_o wilful_o ibib_fw-la shut_v their_o eye_n against_o the_o candle_n place_v on_o the_o candlestick_n qui_fw-la tammagnam_fw-la montem_fw-la non_fw-la vident_fw-la who_o can_v see_v so_o great_a a_o hill_n as_o the_o church_n be_v and_o last_o for_o conclusion_n of_o all_o he_o give_v his_o censure_n of_o they_o in_o these_o word_n quid_fw-la amplius_fw-la sum_fw-la dicturus_fw-la qùam_fw-la caecos_fw-la esse_fw-la what_o shall_v i_o say_v more_o of_o they_o but_o that_o they_o be_v blnd_v thus_o do_v s._n augustine_n interpret_v and_o apply_v these_o scripture_n and_o many_o more_o to_o this_o purpose_n as_o you_o shall_v read_v throughout_o his_o whole_a tract_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la contra_fw-la petilianum_fw-la andel_n where_o 56._o and_o the_o same_o s._n augustine_n to_o
prove_v that_o this_o catholic_a visible_a church_n do_v not_o consist_v of_o the_o good_a and_o elect_v only_o which_o be_v another_o erroneous_a position_n of_o protestant_a religion_n and_o prove_v large_o by_o s._n augustine_n to_o have_v be_v bad_a the_o heresy_n of_o the_o donatist_n and_o pelagian_n their_o brother_n but_o of_o good_a and_o bad_a together_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n and_o for_o confirmation_n thereof_o he_o do_v produce_v &_o interpret_v those_o parable_n use_v by_o our_o saviour_n matth._n 3._o to_o wit_n of_o the_o good_a corn_n and_o chaff_n in_o the_o floor_n and_o of_o the_o net_n cast_v into_o the_o sea_n that_o bring_v up_o both_o good_a and_o bad_a fish_n and_o last_o of_o the_o weed_n and_o good_a corn_n command_v to_o be_v permit_v to_o grow_v together_o upon_o which_o place_n s._n leo_n the_o first_o give_v the_o gloss_n thus_o in_o extremo_fw-la iudicio_fw-la sunt_fw-la quaedam_fw-la urenda_fw-la flammis_fw-la sunt_fw-la alia_fw-la condenda_fw-la horreis_n in_o the_o last_o judgement_n some_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v burn_v with_o the_o flame_n of_o damnation_n other_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v gather_v into_o god_n granary_n all_o these_o place_n and_o many_o more_o both_o s._n augustine_n s._n leo_n &_o many_o of_o the_o father_n do_v interpret_v of_o the_o good_a and_o bad_a that_o be_v promiscuous_o mix_v in_o the_o church_n together_o do_v our_o protestant_n follow_v these_o exposition_n 57_o three_o my_o foresay_a author_n go_v yet_o further_o for_o prove_v of_o a_o three_o assertion_n as_o contrary_a to_o the_o protestant_n as_o they_o be_v opposite_a unto_o truth_n to_o wit_n that_o perish_v this_o public_a and_o visible_a church_n grant_v once_o by_o protestant_n themselves_o to_o have_v be_v the_o true_a church_n can_v never_o fail_v or_o ever_o fall_v away_o to_o the_o world_n end_n for_o prove_v of_o which_o assertion_n he_o allege_v sundry_a passage_n of_o holy_a writ_n far_o different_a for_o interpretation_n from_o the_o protestant_n sense_n his_o word_n be_v that_o church_n say_v he_o that_o be_v once_o of_o all_o nation_n he_o mean_v the_o catholic_a be_v it_o not_o now_o ●01_n have_v it_o perish_v they_o say_v so_o that_o be_v not_o in_o she_o o_o impudent_a voice_n be_v not_o she_o because_o thou_o be_v not_o in_o she_o this_o abominable_a and_o detestable_a voice_n full_a of_o presumption_n and_o falsity_n sustain_v by_o no_o truth_n illuminate_v by_o no_o wisdom_n season_v with_o no_o salt_n vain_a temerarious_a precipitate_a and_o pernicious_a be_v prevent_v and_o refute_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o do_v he_o cyte_v several_a place_n of_o scripture_n to_o prove_v that_o notwithstanding_o all_o exposition_n and_o contradiction_n of_o heretic_n that_o the_o say_v visible_a church_n bring_v once_o collect_v of_o all_o nation_n and_o place_v upon_o the_o open_a hill_n and_o mount_v of_o this_o world_n and_o conspicuous_a unto_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o can_v never_o possible_o vanish_v away_o again_o or_o fall_v from_o christ_n as_o protestant_n do_v false_o charge_v the_o mother_n roman_a church_n and_o consequent_o they_o will_v never_o agree_v to_o expound_v these_o scripture_n as_o s._n augustine_n do_v but_o who_o shall_v we_o rather_o believe_v whether_o be_v a_o luther_n or_o a_o calvin_n or_o s._n augustine_n to_o be_v follow_v or_o which_o church_n he_o or_o this_o of_o the_o protestant_n be_v like_a to_o go_v near_o the_o truth_n and_o to_o light_v upon_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o expound_v these_o scripture_n for_o certain_a i_o be_o their_o exposition_n vary_v and_o be_v repugnant_a one_o to_o the_o other_o 58._o and_o in_o this_o manner_n may_v i_o proceed_v in_o disclose_v this_o great_a doctor_n and_o famous_a pillar_n of_o the_o church_n s_o austin_n his_o judgement_n for_o the_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n concern_v catholic_n all_o controversy_n or_o the_o most_o of_o they_o between_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o protestant_n at_o this_o day_n wherein_o the_o say_a father_n be_v no_o less_o perspicuous_a and_o copious_a then_o as_o if_o be_v a_o eyewitness_n and_o a_o earwitness_n of_o all_o point_n now_o controvert_v he_o have_v write_v in_o these_o very_a day_n of_o sirife_n among_o us._n and_o either_o this_o be_v or_o i_o know_v not_o what_o can_v be_v a_o manifest_a demonstration_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n guide_v the_o pen_n of_o this_o worthy_a doctor_n to_o tax_v and_o prescribe_v against_o the_o manifold_a heresy_n of_o our_o time_n as_o for_o example_n touch_v the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n who_o doctor_n field_n out_o of_o a_o fanatical_a spirit_n and_o spirit_n of_o heresy_n surcharge_v and_o false_o traduce_v of_o heresy_n what_o writer_n of_o this_o time_n can_v deliver_v and_o set_v down_o his_o opinion_n more_o resolute_o than_o he_o do_v he_o prove_v the_o same_o irrefragable_o both_o by_o the_o allegation_n and_o exposition_n of_o sundry_a passage_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o namely_o by_o those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n matth._n 12._o it_o shall_v not_o be_v remit_v unto_o he_o either_o 5._o in_o this_o life_n or_o in_o the_o next_o whereupon_o this_o great_a doctor_n infer_v that_o some_o sin_n be_v remit_v in_o the_o next_o &_o consequent_o there_o must_v be_v a_o purgatory_n and_o so_o that_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n 1_o cor._n 3._o every_o man_n work_n shall_v be_v try_v by_o the_o fire_n of_o what_o sort_n it_o be_v s._n augustine_n do_v also_o apply_v to_o prove_v the_o same_o purge_a fire_n to_o remain_v for_o some_o sin_n or_o bad_a work_n in_o the_o 26._o next_o life_n and_o these_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n confirm_v purgatory_n deliver_v by_o s._n augustine_n and_o oftentimes_o reiterated_a in_o his_o work_n be_v never_o reprehend_v by_o any_o as_o false_a nor_o the_o father_n tax_v as_o teach_v any_o erroneous_a doctrine_n dissonant_n from_o the_o doctrine_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o doubtless_o he_o can_v never_o have_v escape_v have_v his_o assertion_n of_o purgatory_n be_v erroneous_a live_v in_o the_o age_n of_o s._n ambrose_n s._n hierome_n and_o other_o learned_a father_n who_o want_v neither_o learning_n nor_o zeal_n to_o have_v both_o match_v he_o and_o confute_v he_o have_v he_o swerve_v in_o aught_o from_o sound_a faith_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o present_a church_n and_o consequent_o purgatory_n be_v then_o hold_v for_o no_o error_n or_o heresy_n and_o the_o like_a i_o may_v abundant_o prove_v in_o many_o other_o point_n both_o out_o of_o s._n augustine_n and_o sundry_a other_o of_o like_a antiquity_n learning_n and_o sanctity_n 59_o final_o the_o conclusion_n of_o all_o this_o main_n chapter_n and_o treatise_n of_o sacred_a scripture_n must_v of_o necessity_n fall_v out_o to_o be_v this_o that_o not_o all_o believe_a of_o scripture_n nor_o appeal_n consideration_n unto_o scripture_n nor_o sense_v of_o scripture_n nor_o presume_v of_o the_o spirit_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o christian_n catholic_n for_o that_o as_o have_v be_v former_o note_v forth_o of_o s._n bernard_n many_o man_n presume_v of_o god_n spirit_n when_o it_o be_v not_o but_o their_o own_o spirit_n or_o rather_o the_o spirit_n of_o satan_n and_o consequent_o take_v or_o rather_o mistake_v their_o own_o spirit_n exposition_n for_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n again_o some_o when_o they_o err_v in_o expound_v scripture_n be_v notwithstanding_o of_o opinion_n that_o they_o follow_v scripture_n when_o indeed_o they_o follow_v their_o own_o error_n so_o s._n augustine_n observe_v 60._o three_o other_o by_o a_o perverse_a interpretation_n make_v of_o christ_n gospel_n man_v gospel_n or_o that_o which_o be_v worse_o the_o devil_n gospel_n as_o s._n hierome_n note_v and_o yet_o all_o these_o with_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o former_a heretic_n pretend_v to_o urge_v and_o build_v upon_o scripture_n but_o no_o marvel_n if_o all_o these_o appeal_n unto_o scripture_n upon_o a_o false_a confidence_n think_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n make_v for_o they_o when_o it_o make_v against_o they_o for_o let_v these_o scripturian_o be_v but_o mark_v let_v they_o be_v unmask_v that_o be_v as_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n 36._o excellen_o deliver_v the_o observation_n against_o they_o let_v not_o only_o their_o say_n but_o their_o meaning_n not_o their_o word_n but_o their_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v note_v than_o their_o bitterness_n shall_v be_v detect_v their_o madness_n disclose_v their_o lyrinensis_n new_a poison_n vent_v forth_o their_o profane_a novelty_n reveal_v then_o the_o hedge_n shall_v be_v cut_v than_o the_o bound_n of_o father_n shall_v be_v translate_v than_o catholic_a faith_n shall_v be_v violate_v and_o the_o church_n position_n cancel_v hitherto_o vincentius_n 61._o the_o only_a way_n then_o to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o true_a christian_a catholic_a indeed_o if_o
all_o ancient_a rule_n and_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n fail_v not_o be_v first_o to_o admit_v and_o reverence_n that_o for_o scripture_n which_o the_o universal_a catholic_a church_n have_v by_o lineal_a descent_n of_o tradition_n deliver_v and_o commend_v unto_o we_o for_o scripture_n and_o that_o after_o all_o doubt_n and_o controversy_n discuss_v about_o the_o same_o and_o not_o that_o which_o luther_n or_o calvin_n who_o can_v make_v &_o unmake_v scripture_n at_o their_o pleasure_n or_o our_o own_o private_a spirit_n shall_v conceit_n to_o be_v scripture_n and_o second_o for_o the_o sense_n and_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n if_o we_o have_v any_o care_n of_o that_o or_o imagine_v that_o it_o do_v import_v we_o at_o all_o we_o be_v no_o less_o to_o stand_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o say_a church_n for_o the_o exposition_n and_o interpretation_n thereof_o than_o we_o do_v before_o for_o the_o deliver_v of_o scripture_n unto_o us._n and_o so_o much_o for_o this_o chapter_n the_o three_o chapter_n concern_v the_o second_o point_v or_o general_n head_n profess_v by_o his_o majesty_n concern_v his_o believe_v of_o the_o three_o creed_n receive_v by_o the_o church_n as_o the_o former_a offer_n so_o constant_o aver_v by_o his_o majesty_n of_o england_n concern_v the_o believe_v of_o all_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v a_o sign_n and_o liberal_a token_n of_o a_o religious_a inclination_n zealous_a affection_n and_o pious_a disposition_n as_o before_o have_v be_v intimate_v and_o relate_v even_o so_o no_o less_o religious_a zealous_a and_o pious_a be_v this_o assertion_n also_o here_o so_o confident_o assever_v by_o his_o highness_n touch_v the_o acceptance_n and_o admittance_n of_o the_o three_o ancient_a creed_n and_o that_o in_o the_o very_a same_o sense_n as_o the_o ancient_a father_n &_o counsel_n that_o make_v they_o do_v understand_v they_o for_o these_o be_v his_o majesty_n very_a word_n which_o i_o have_v think_v good_a here_o to_o relate_v wish_v they_o to_o remain_v upon_o a_o everlasting_a and_o time-out-wearing_a record_n and_o that_o for_o these_o two_o principal_a reason_n first_o that_o i_o may_v not_o undutiful_o forget_v to_o defer_v and_o bring_v the_o just_a descrued_a honour_n and_o the_o most_o high_o respect_v commendation_n unto_o my_o sovereign_a lord_n the_o king_n most_o due_a to_o his_o grace_n for_o this_o his_o confession_n which_o also_o out_o of_o a_o true_a subject_n love_n and_o loyalty_n towards_o his_o prince_n i_o can_v sincere_o wish_v may_v never_o by_o any_o the_o least_o cloud_n of_o error_n in_o his_o royal_a understanding_n be_v eclipse_v or_o obscure_v and_o second_o for_o that_o i_o trust_v my_o former_a brethren_n of_o the_o protestanticall_a church_n of_o england_n will_v either_o now_o at_o last_o stand_v to_o their_o ground_n of_o creed_n counsel_n father_n scripture_n voluntary_o choose_v by_o the_o lord_n and_o head_n of_o their_o church_n that_o hitherto_o upon_o my_o knowledge_n will_v never_o be_v confine_v within_o the_o list_n and_o limyt_n of_o any_o even_a trial_n or_o else_o that_o my_o lord_n the_o king_n will_v easy_o out_o of_o the_o depth_n of_o his_o judicious_a understanding_n unmask_v and_o discover_v these_o man_n for_o such_o as_o they_o be_v even_o wolf_n in_o sheep_n clothing_n false_a ghospeller_n antichrist_n deceaver_n seducer_n impostor_n and_o now_o to_o come_v to_o the_o word_n themselves_o as_o they_o be_v substantial_o couch_v together_o in_o his_o majesty_n book_n of_o premonition_n they_o be_v lay_v down_o as_o follow_v 2._o and_o now_o for_o the_o point_n of_o heretic_n i_o will_v never_o say_v he_o be_v ashamed_a to_o render_v a_o account_n of_o my_o profession_n and_o that_o hope_v that_o be_v in_o i_o as_o the_o apostle_n prescribe_v i_o be_o such_o a_o catholic_n christian_n as_o believe_v the_o three_o creed_n that_o of_o the_o apostle_n that_o of_o the_o 3●_n council_n of_o nyce_n and_o that_o of_o athanasius_n the_o two_o late_a being_n paraphrase_n to_o the_o former_a and_o i_o believe_v they_o in_o that_o sense_n as_o the_o ancient-fathers_n and_o counsel_n that_o make_v they_o do_v understand_v they_o to_o which_o three_o creed_n all_o the_o minister_n of_o england_n do_v subscribe_v at_o their_o ordination_n and_o i_o also_o acknowledge_v for_o orthodoxal_a those_o other_o offer_n form_n of_o creed_n that_o either_o be_v devise_v by_o counsel_n or_o particular_a father_n against_o such_o particular_a heresy_n as_o most_o reign_v in_o their_o time_n hitherto_o extend_v the_o word_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o can_v any_o thing_n be_v speak_v more_o honourable_o than_o this_o this_o form_n of_o confession_n punctual_o and_o so_o substantial_o deliver_v by_o his_o highness_n i_o can_v never_o sufficient_o commend_v for_o that_o this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o savour_v of_o any_o spice_n of_o heresy_n as_o that_o here_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o true_a catholic_a divinity_n for_o what_o can_v be_v more_o require_v for_o more_o full_a supplement_n of_o a_o catholic_a christian_a man_n confession_n then_o to_o believe_v the_o three_o creed_n in_o the_o very_a self_n same_o sense_n as_o the_o holy_a apostle_n ancient_a father_n and_o general_a counsel_n do_v understand_v they_o and_o now_o if_o the_o minister_n of_o england_n that_o do_v subscribe_v unto_o they_o in_o their_o ordination_n will_v keep_v and_o confine_v themselves_o within_o that_o sense_n which_o the_o ancient_a christian_a church_n do_v both_o constant_o and_o religious_o hold_v and_o will_v not_o of_o their_o own_o fancy_n presume_v to_o add_v any_o other_o new_a gloss_n or_o private_a interpretation_n of_o their_o own_o brain_n the_o world_n shall_v never_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v such_o breach_n and_o tumult_n such_o uproar_n and_o outcry_n such_o inundation_n and_o innovation_n and_o all_o about_o religion_n as_o now_o there_o be_v 3._o but_o the_o truth_n be_v as_o s._n augustine_n affirm_v quòd_fw-la fieri_fw-la potest_fw-la ut_fw-la integra_fw-la quis_fw-la teneat_fw-la verba_fw-la symboli_fw-la &_o tamen_fw-la non_fw-la rectè_fw-la credat_fw-la 15._o de_fw-la omnibus_fw-la symboli_fw-la articulis_fw-la a_o man_n may_v hold_v and_o profess_v all_o the_o word_n of_o the_o creed_n he_o mean_v the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o yet_o not_o have_v a_o true_a belief_n of_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o say_a creed_n nay_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o symbolo_fw-la go_v yet_o further_o say_v sub_fw-la ipsis_fw-la paucis_fw-la verbis_fw-la in_o symbolo_fw-la constitutis_fw-la plerique_fw-la haeretici_fw-la venena_fw-la sua_fw-la occultare_fw-la conati_fw-la sunt_fw-la most_o part_n of_o heretic_n have_v go_v about_o and_o endeavour_v under_o these_o few_o word_n of_o the_o apostolical_a creed_n to_o cover_v their_o poison_a heresy_n so_o as_o the_o believe_a of_o these_o creed_n in_o general_n they_o contain_v but_o capita_n credendorum_fw-la universal_a head_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o christian_n catholic_n except_o also_o we_o give_v our_o firm_a assent_n unto_o all_o the_o particular_n that_o necessary_o may_v be_v reduce_v or_o deduce_v from_o those_o general_a head_n for_o better_a explication_n whereof_o i_o have_v think_v it_o convenient_a in_o this_o place_n to_o address_v certain_a consideration_n that_o here_o ensue_v the_o first_o consideration_n as_o the_o skilful_a and_o careful_a physician_n employ_v no_o less_o industry_n spare_v neither_o counsel_n in_o physic_n reverence_v nor_o prescription_n in_o diet_n for_o the_o conserve_n and_o continue_v of_o the_o bodily_a health_n of_o his_o patient_n until_o he_o have_v bring_v he_o to_o former_a health_n and_o full_a strength_n than_o he_o do_v bestow_v pain_n and_o travail_v in_o recover_v he_o of_o his_o infirmity_n and_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o bed_n of_o his_o malady_n even_o so_o the_o apostle_n as_o so_o many_o sovereign_a soul_n best_a physician_n most_o painful_o and_o diligent_o watch_v over_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n their_o sick_a patient_n to_o uphould_v and_o continue_v they_o in_o christian_a piety_n and_o catholic_a verity_n as_o well_o as_o they_o have_v cure_v they_o of_o their_o spiritual_a leprosy_n and_o raise_v their_o soul_n which_o have_v long_o lie_v sick_a upon_o the_o bed_n creed_n of_o heathenish_a infidelity_n and_o all_o that_o they_o may_v recover_v full_a strength_n in_o save_v and_o believe_v faith_n and_o grow_v to_o be_v perfect_a and_o whole_a man_n in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o here_o you_o have_v the_o occasion_n motive_n drift_n reason_n &_o intention_n of_o christ_n holy_a apostle_n in_o compile_v the_o perfect_a platform_n of_o wholesome_a faith_n and_o christian_a belief_n i_o mean_v this_o methodical_a and_o apostolical_a form_n of_o creed_n which_o involu_v in_o it_o either_o explicit_a or_o implicit_a in_o plain_a word_n or_o necessary_a supply_n whatsoever_o belong_v to_o the_o object_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o therefore_o say_v s._n
he_o shall_v protest_v &_o confess_v open_o ten_o thousand_o time_n that_o he_o admit_v all_o the_o word_n and_o every_o syllable_n thereof_o 8._o it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v consider_v that_o it_o be_v most_o worthy_a of_o a_o christian_a man_n his_o observation_n especial_o if_o he_o have_v either_o care_n or_o make_v any_o conscience_n to_o preserve_v himself_o believe_v sound_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o thereby_o to_o save_v his_o soul_n that_o albeit_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v with_o uniform_a verdict_n affirm_v that_o these_o article_n of_o the_o apostolical_a creed_n be_v set_v down_o by_o the_o holy_a apostle_n replenish_v and_o direct_v with_o no_o small_a measure_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o now_o have_v be_v observe_v i_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o discuss_v at_o this_o present_a whether_o every_o several_a article_n of_o the_o twelve_o which_o it_o contain_v be_v set_v dowue_a by_o several_a apostle_n though_o diverse_a grave_n and_o ancient_a father_n do_v affirm_v it_o yet_o be_v these_o article_n never_o hold_v for_o canonical_a scripture_n no_o nor_o yet_o be_v they_o at_o this_o day_n either_o by_o catholic_a or_o protestant_n and_o if_o any_o man_n reply_n that_o they_o be_v consonant_n unto_o scripture_n and_o may_v be_v thence_o deduce_v i_o deny_v not_o that_o only_o i_o say_v this_o be_v nothing_o to_o argue_v that_o authority_n that_o they_o have_v obtain_v in_o the_o church_n since_o that_o all_o other_o write_n of_o orthodox_a man_n be_v both_o consonant_n unto_o scripture_n and_o to_o be_v deduce_v from_o they_o and_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o hold_v in_o that_o esteem_n as_o the_o creed_n but_o my_o consequence_n that_o hereupon_o i_o infer_v be_v this_o that_o something_o must_v be_v grant_v of_o necessity_n beside_o canonical_a scripture_n to_o have_v be_v necessary_o believe_v in_o the_o christian_a catholic_a church_n and_o that_o by_o tradition_n only_o without_o any_o other_o foundaation_n and_o that_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o christian_a religion_n 9_o this_o appear_v by_o the_o former_a word_n of_o s._n augustine_n that_o this_o creed_n come_v down_o along_o through_o the_o century_n of_o the_o church_n by_o tradition_n and_o ruffinus_n say_v in_o his_o exposition_n of_o this_o creed_n idcirco_fw-la haec_fw-la nonscripta_fw-la font_n chartulis_fw-la atque_fw-la membranis_fw-la symbolum_n etc._n etc._n &_o therefore_o do_v the_o apostle_n deliver_v these_o thing_n not_o write_v in_o paper_n and_o parchment_n but_o to_o be_v retain_v in_o man_n heart_n to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v be_v certain_a that_o no_o man_n shall_v by_o read_v have_v the_o same_o for_o that_o write_n be_v accustom_v to_o come_v also_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o infidel_n aswell_o as_o christian_n but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o have_v learn_v the_o same_o from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o ruffinus_n give_v of_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o creed_n 10._o the_o very_a same_o have_v s._n hierome_n his_o word_n be_v clear_a in_o symbolo_fw-la fidei_fw-la &_o spei_fw-la nostrae_fw-la say_v he_o non_fw-la scribitur_fw-la in_o chartis_fw-la &_o atramento_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o tabulis_fw-la cordis_fw-la carnalibus_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o the_o creed_n that_o contain_v our_o faith_n and_o hope_n which_o be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o write_v church_n in_o paper_n and_o ink_n but_o in_o the_o fleshly_a table_n of_o our_o heart_n etc._n etc._n and_o all_o this_o do_v evident_o convince_v unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o understand_a man_n that_o these_o article_n of_o the_o apostolic_a creed_n be_v deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n unto_o christian_n and_o the_o church_n be_v put_v in_o trust_n with_o they_o to_o teach_v they_o unto_o her_o child_n before_o that_o any_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v commit_v to_o writing_n and_o that_o many_o thing_n of_o great_a moment_n about_o the_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v leave_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o expound_v therein_o and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n learning_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n especial_o concern_v sacrament_n which_o be_v not_o express_v and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o s._n augustine_n and_o other_o father_n before_o he_o do_v often_o reiterate_v and_o frequent_o use_v that_o impsove_a kind_n of_o speech_n norum_n fideles_fw-la the_o faithful_a do_v know_v what_o belong_v unto_o these_o matter_n which_o purposely_o they_o do_v not_o reveal_v unto_o the_o ear_n of_o new_a christian_n least_o infidel_n may_v take_v any_o advantage_n thereby_o to_o the_o disadvantage_n of_o the_o church_n so_o as_o my_o conclusion_n of_o this_o must_v of_o necessity_n hold_v correspondence_n with_o that_o former_a conclusion_n touch_v the_o argument_n of_o scripture_n to_o wit_n whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o never_o so_o open_o &_o plain_o profess_v that_o he_o do_v accept_v admit_v and_o believe_v this_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o refuse_v the_o understanding_n thereof_o expound_v by_o the_o church_n and_o deliver_v in_o her_o sense_n he_o believe_v it_o not_o at_o all_o to_o salvation_n neither_o shall_v it_o avail_v he_o any_o more_o to_o admit_v the_o word_n and_o not_o receive_v the_o sense_n then_o if_o at_o once_o and_o altogether_o he_o reject_v both_o word_n and_o sense_n 11._o and_o here_o may_v some_o demand_n but_o where_o now_o shall_v we_o be_v sure_a to_o find_v this_o exposition_n of_o the_o church_n esspecial_o find_v in_o these_o distract_a time_n of_o schism_n when_o so_o many_o several_a sect_n plead_v for_o the_o church_n cry_v out_o according_a to_o christ_n his_o prophetical_a prediction_n here_o be_v christ_n and_o there_o be_v christ_n here_o be_v the_o church_n &_o there_o be_v the_o pure_a chospell_n here_o be_v the_o word_n true_o preach_v &_o there_o be_v the_o sacrament_n sincere_o administer_v &_o c_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v we_o shall_v easy_o come_v by_o this_o orthodox_a exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n if_o we_o have_v recourse_n unto_o the_o public_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v from_o age_n to_o age_n even_o until_o our_o time_n throughout_o every_o century_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o church_n be_v ever_o visible_a unless_o it_o be_v unto_o such_o as_o be_v blind_a as_o s._n augustine_n have_v already_o observe_v 12._o s._n ambrose_n in_o his_o time_n remit_v we_o unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o supreme_a pastor_n whereof_o be_v than_o siricius_n for_o our_o direction_n herein_o credatur_fw-la symbolum_n apostolorum_fw-la say_v he_o quod_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la rome_n ana_fw-la intemeratum_fw-la semper_fw-la custodit_fw-la &_o seruat_fw-la let_v faith_n be_v give_v to_o the_o apostle_n creed_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v ever_o keep_v and_o preserve_v inviolated_a &_o yet_o be_v this_o upon_o the_o very_a point_n of_o 400._o year_n after_o christ_n his_o ascension_n so_o as_o in_o that_o time_n and_o in_o this_o great_a saint_n and_o doctor_n judgement_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v then_o the_o best_a and_o sure_a direction_n to_o know_v the_o true_a content_n and_o meaning_n of_o this_o apostolic_a creed_n and_o consequent_o if_o our_o english_a ministry_n who_o at_o their_o ordination_n do_v subscribe_v unto_o this_o creed_n will_v follow_v also_o the_o same_o direction_n for_o the_o true_a understanding_n and_o sense_n thereof_o all_o matter_n will_v quick_o be_v reconcile_v &_o controversy_n accord_v but_o in_o default_n of_o this_o and_o for_o that_o pride_n and_o self_n will_v have_v so_o be_v witch_v the_o mind_n of_o many_o that_o they_o can_v in_o humility_n stoop_v down_o their_o private_a censure_n unto_o the_o public_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o this_o great_a discord_n and_o difference_n that_o now_o be_v reign_v betwixt_o catholic_n &_o protestant_n and_o among_o protestant_n themselves_o concern_v the_o exposition_n thereof_o and_o this_o shall_v appear_v in_o part_n in_o the_o next_o ensue_a consideration_n of_o this_o chapter_n but_o yet_o before_o we_o enter_v into_o the_o other_o consideration_n we_o shall_v speak_v a_o word_n or_o two_o of_o the_o other_o creed_n mention_v here_o by_o his_o majesty_n 13._o the_o other_o creed_n then_o be_v the_o nieene_n conclude_v gratian._n as_o s._n ambrose_n note_v with_o the_o suffrage_n of_o 318._o renown_a father_n allude_v to_o the_o just_a number_n of_o abraham_n soldier_n when_o he_o rescue_v lot_n and_o of_o s._n athanasius_n and_o these_o be_v write_v upon_o occasion_n of_o heresy_n afterward_o arise_v and_o impugn_v some_o fundamental_a point_n &_o consequent_o athanasius_n be_v but_o explication_n of_o the_o former_a as_o his_o majesty_n do_v learned_o and_o excellent_o observe_v and_o therefore_o these_o do_v principal_o depend_v thereon_o this_o be_v evident_a if_o we_o reflect_v a_o little_a upon_o the_o principal_a subject_n of_o the_o 2._o
creed_n for_o do_v not_o they_o both_o expound_v and_o unfold_v that_o high_a and_o obstruse_a mystery_n of_o the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n his_o identity_n and_o equality_n of_o substance_n power_n and_o glory_n with_o god_n his_o father_n witness_v those_o word_n add_v and_o use_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a about_o 310._o year_n after_o christ_n deum_fw-la venet._n de_fw-la deo_fw-la lumen_fw-la de_fw-la lumine_fw-la deum_fw-la verum_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la vero_fw-la genitum_fw-la non_fw-la factum_fw-la consubstantialem_fw-la patri_fw-la god_n of_o god_n light_a of_o light_n very_a god_n of_o very_a god_n beget_v not_o make_v be_v consubstantial_a to_o the_o father_n etc._n etc._n witness_v s._n athanasius_n his_o creed_n that_o be_v make_v by_o he_o in_o rome_n for_o confession_n of_o his_o faith_n some_o 15._o year_n after_o that_o again_o wherein_o there_o be_v find_v that_o exact_a manner_n of_o speech_n distinguish_v the_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n qualis_fw-la pater_fw-la talis_fw-la filius_fw-la talis_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sanctus_n such_o as_o the_o father_n be_v such_o be_v the_o son_n and_o such_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o then_o he_o set_v down_o more_o particular_o the_o distinctive_a appellation_n and_o peculiar_a propriety_n belong_v unto_o every_o person_n as_o the_o father_n unbegotten_a the_o son_n beget_v of_o the_o father_n the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v asmuch_o as_o if_o in_o plain_a term_n he_o have_v say_v the_o father_n distinguish_v with_o this_o personal_a propriety_n of_o beget_v a_o son_n be_v a_o father_n and_o no_o son_n the_o son_n distinguish_v with_o his_o personal_a propriety_n of_o be_v beget_v be_v a_o son_n and_o not_o a_o father_n the_o holy_a ghost_n distinguish_v by_o his_o personal_a propriety_n of_o proceed_v be_v a_o holy_a ghost_n &_o neither_o father_n nor_o son_n 14._o by_o all_o which_o we_o see_v the_o exceed_a great_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o determine_v these_o different_a manner_n of_o speech_n in_o disclose_v this_o ineffable_a and_o inutterable_a mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n which_o be_v not_o find_v at_o all_o totidem_fw-la verbis_fw-la in_o the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o be_v deny_v by_o the_o scripturian_n heretic_n for_o as_o learned_a hosius_n note_v and_o it_o be_v the_o observation_n of_o s._n ambrose_n against_o one_o only_a article_n of_o our_o saviour_n consubstantiality_n with_o his_o father_n they_o allege_v 50._o place_n of_o scripture_n i_o mean_v the_o arian_n who_o verbo_fw-la do_v bear_v great_a sway_n and_o insinuate_v themselves_o into_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o emperor_n for_o the_o better_a support_v of_o their_o damnable_a heresy_n as_o the_o protestant_n do_v creep_v into_o the_o favour_n of_o our_o king_n at_o this_o day_n for_o the_o uphould_v of_o their_o error_n and_o therefore_o great_a pity_n it_o be_v that_o the_o protestant_n and_o arian_n have_v not_o live_v in_o one_o age_n together_o that_o they_o may_v have_v join_v hand_n each_o one_o with_o another_o who_o do_v so_o near_o resemble_v each_o one_o the_o other_o in_o their_o behaviour_n and_o manner_n of_o proceed_v 15._o well_o then_o we_o see_v that_o the_o former_a mystery_n of_o the_o deity_n and_o trinity_n can_v be_v determine_v by_o no_o other_o power_n and_o authority_n upon_o earth_n then_o by_o that_o supreme_a power_n of_o the_o church_n for_o that_o express_a warrant_n of_o scripture_n there_o be_v none_o in_o their_o pretence_n for_o many_o of_o these_o word_n that_o be_v now_o use_v and_o frequent_v by_o the_o church_n in_o the_o explication_n of_o these_o creed_n be_v not_o then_o in_o use_n but_o invent_v and_o apply_v afterwad_v by_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o present_a necessity_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o have_v they_o be_v so_o acknowledge_v and_o receive_v ever_o since_o by_o all_o christendom_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o that_o behalf_n determine_v and_o expound_v have_v stand_v inviolable_a and_o such_o as_o have_v not_o admit_v the_o same_o have_v ever_o be_v repute_v and_o account_v for_o wicked_a and_o damn_a heretic_n and_o this_o be_v to_o be_v note_v with_o attention_n as_o before_o i_o have_v partly_o touch_v in_o general_a that_o albeit_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a represent_v the_o whole_a christian_a church_n of_o that_o age_n do_v not_o nor_o can_v not_o make_v any_o new_a article_n of_o belief_n that_o be_v not_o true_a before_o but_o only_o do_v more_o full_o and_o plain_o explain_v and_o declare_v such_o thing_n as_o the_o impudence_n and_o importunity_n of_o heretic_n call_v into_o doubt_n and_o question_n so_o do_v not_o the_o say_a council_n explayne_v all_o that_o belong_v to_o the_o divine_a person_n for_o they_o leave_v at_o credo_fw-la in_o spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o there_o break_v of_o not_o unfould_v any_o thing_n particular_o controversy_n touch_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n about_o which_o there_o be_v afterward_o so_o great_a strife_n and_o contention_n and_o be_v to_o this_o day_n with_o the_o late_a obstinate_a greek_n affirm_v the_o same_o person_n to_o proceed_v only_o from_o the_o father_n &_o not_o from_o the_o son_n but_o leave_v that_o by_o god_n providence_n to_o be_v expound_v afterwards_o by_o other_o counsel_n when_o that_o point_n shall_v be_v call_v into_o question_n and_o so_o it_o be_v so_o that_o it_o be_v more_o than_o evident_a unto_o every_o one_o that_o will_v not_o wilful_o shut_v his_o eye_n against_o the_o clear_a sun_n shine_v of_o truth_n that_o there_o be_v leave_v continual_a power_n in_o the_o church_n to_o explayne_v and_o determine_v with_o authority_n and_o that_o irrefragable_a and_o unresistable_a any_o doubt_n never_o so_o weighty_a about_o the_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n or_o any_o other_o article_n of_o belief_n or_o any_o other_o high_a point_n of_o divine_a mystery_n that_o shall_v arise_v among_o christian_n and_o that_o unto_o the_o world_n last_o end_n &_o every_o one_o under_o pain_n of_o damnable_a obedience_n against_o christ_n spouse_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n the_o director_n thereof_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v and_o captivate_v his_o judgement_n and_o understand_v thereto_o and_o not_o to_o stand_v in_o contention_n against_o the_o same_o and_o thus_o much_o of_o these_o three_o creed_n in_o general_a how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v reverence_v now_o let_v we_o descend_v unto_o the_o several_a article_n and_o position_n thereof_o in_o particular_a the_o second_o consideration_n now_o succeed_v our_o second_o consideration_n about_o the_o examine_n of_o certain_a particular_n of_o these_o three_o creed_n creed_n how_o they_o be_v receive_v and_o believe_v you_o have_v hear_v before_o how_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v subscribe_v unto_o the_o same_o at_o their_o ordination_n now_o let_v we_o examine_v whether_o this_o english_a clergy_n notwithstanding_o all_o their_o subscription_n thereunto_o do_v indeed_o true_o believe_v they_o and_o expound_v they_o in_o the_o self_n same_o sense_n interpretation_n and_o meaning_n as_o the_o general_n counsel_n and_o ancient_a father_n that_o collect_v they_o mean_v they_o as_o they_o do_v persuade_v his_o majesty_n they_o do_v a_o man_n will_v think_v that_o so_o solemn_a a_o oath_n take_v before_o a_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n at_o the_o tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o for_o preservation_n of_o religion_n and_o conseruaaion_n of_o the_o integrity_n of_o ancient_a faith_n lay_v down_o in_o ancient_a creed_n and_o general_a counsel_n shall_v religious_o bind_v before_o god_n and_o man_n people_n of_o their_o quality_n and_o condition_n but_o behold_v heresy_n that_o neither_o fear_v god_n nor_o revetence_v man_n observe_v no_o band_n at_o all_o but_o draw_v every_o thing_n to_o every_o man_n particular_a judgement_n and_o censure_v and_o therefore_o it_o do_v little_o avail_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o reverence_n and_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o the_o creed_n whilst_o they_o reject_v the_o church_n sense_n and_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o same_o to_o swear_v unto_o they_o in_o word_n by_o subscription_n at_o their_o ordination_n but_o to_o forswear_v they_o in_o deed_n by_o a_o perverse_a and_o sinister_a interpretation_n and_o exposition_n and_o this_o god_n willing_a shall_v be_v make_v good_a against_o they_o in_o the_o subsequent_a consideration_n direct_v and_o address_v for_o this_o especial_a purpose_n 17._o first_o than_o it_o be_v set_v down_o and_o denounce_v in_o the_o creed_n of_o s._n athanasius_n read_v every_o sunday_n in_o the_o english_a church_n by_o order_n of_o the_o communion_n book_n that_o whosover_n entire_o do_v not_o believe_v whole_o and_o inviolable_o the_o catholic_a faith_n shall_v without_o doubt_n perish_v everlasting_o by_o which_o catholic_a faith_n he_o understand_v the_o whole_a catholic_a faith_n and_o every_o article_n or_o
this_o suffice_v for_o this_o article_n 40._o let_v we_o now_o a_o little_a cast_v about_o and_o take_v a_o view_n of_o the_o nine_o article_n in_o order_n as_o the_o creed_n natural_o branch_v it_o and_o it_o be_v this_o credo_fw-la sanctam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n the_o word_n of_o this_o article_n be_v agree_v upon_o on_o all_o part_n but_o the_o sense_n frame_v catholicam_fw-la thereupon_o and_o believe_v of_o different_a christian_n be_v most_o different_a and_o repugnant_a for_o first_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a &_o true_o catholic_a religion_n do_v according_a to_o the_o exposition_n of_o ancient_a father_n which_o be_v a_o most_o certain_a and_o infallible_a rule_n of_o their_o faith_n understand_v by_o this_o catholic_a church_n that_o visible_a congregation_n of_o the_o first_o believe_v church_n christian_n gather_v together_o in_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o time_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n his_o ascension_n at_o which_o assembly_n the_o holy_a apostle_n themselves_o who_o make_v this_o article_n be_v present_a together_o with_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mother_n of_o god_n and_o other_o holy_a man_n and_o woman_n upon_o who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v enlighten_v they_o and_o inflame_v they_o to_o preach_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o further_o establish_v and_o confirm_v they_o in_o the_o truth_n encourage_v they_o to_o go_v forwards_o manful_o without_o fear_n of_o any_o opposite_a humane_a power_n and_o promise_v they_o that_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n &_o assistance_n of_o the_o same_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v with_o they_o and_o the_o director_n of_o they_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n to_o preserve_v this_o church_n and_o holy_a congregation_n in_o all_o necessity_n and_o extremity_n so_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n and_o damnable_a error_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o it_o 41._o moreover_o the_o say_a catholic_a christian_n do_v ever_o understand_v this_o church_n to_o be_v call_v holy_a in_o respect_n both_o of_o the_o great_a sanctity_n of_o her_o doctrine_n and_o the_o holiness_n of_o many_o of_o her_o child_n who_o beside_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n as_o s._n gregory_n speak_v nay_o over_o and_o above_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n as_o s._n basill_n and_o s._n chyrsostome_n joint_o speak_v 5._o shall_v endeavour_v etiam_fw-la praecepta_fw-la legis_fw-la perfectiori_fw-la virtute_fw-la transcendere_fw-la to_o transcend_v the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n by_o devout_v themselves_o unto_o the_o observation_n of_o christ_n his_o high_a counsel_n of_o evangelicall_a perfection_n 42._o also_o this_o church_n be_v call_v holy_a for_o the_o immediate_a and_o perpetuate_v assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n inspire_v she_o inward_o direct_v she_o outward_o and_o especial_o for_o the_o mean_n of_o sanctification_n convey_v unto_o she_o through_o the_o conduct_n of_o her_o sacrament_n as_o chief_a and_o most_o holy_a instrument_n to_o that_o effect_n confer_v grace_n for_o our_o assistance_n in_o the_o perform_n of_o all_o good_a work_n whereof_o none_o can_v be_v partaker_n to_o salvation_n out_o of_o this_o church_n 43._o this_o church_n be_v also_o call_v catholic_a for_o the_o reason_n before_o set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n and_o first_o consideration_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v universal_o spread_v over_o the_o world_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o very_a beginning_n and_o so_o have_v hitherto_o continue_v still_o and_o ever_o shall_v to_o the_o world_n end_n and_o further_o it_o have_v these_o sign_n and_o mark_n to_o be_v know_v by_o and_o to_o be_v distinguish_v from_o all_o heretical_a congregation_n whatsoever_o to_o wit_n antiquity_n universality_n union_n and_o succession_n by_o descent_n of_o bishop_n and_o final_o for_o full_a complement_n it_o have_v that_o communion_n of_o saint_n both_o by_o union_n in_o faith_n and_o communion_n of_o sacrament_n which_o no_o other_o schismatical_a conventicle_n or_o heretical_a congregation_n have_v and_o out_o of_o this_o communion_n there_o can_v be_v no_o possibility_n of_o life_n or_o salvation_n 32._o all_o this_o and_o much_o more_o which_o here_o i_o be_o constrain_v to_o omit_v do_v those_o of_o the_o roman_a religion_n understand_v by_o this_o article_n i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o it_o will_v require_v a_o whole_a volume_n to_o set_v down_o the_o several_a sentence_n discourse_n and_o authority_n of_o ancient_a father_n that_o joint_o concur_v in_o this_o exposition_n and_o explanation_n 44._o but_o now_o on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o we_o cast_v our_o eye_n upon_o the_o state_n of_o the_o english_a clergy_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o article_n howsoever_o they_o do_v admit_v the_o same_o in_o word_n yea_o and_o subscribe_v thereunto_o in_o their_o ordination_n for_o that_o they_o teach_v their_o rligion_n to_o follow_v their_o state_n as_o their_o state_n bring_v in_o their_o religion_n yet_o exceed_o great_a be_v the_o difference_n and_o large_a be_v their_o conscience_n in_o understand_v the_o same_o as_o may_v appear_v in_o part_n out_o of_o the_o 19_o article_n publish_v by_o m._n rogers_n as_o agree_v upon_o by_o our_o english_a bishop_n concern_v the_o church_n about_o which_o he_o have_v seven_o several_a proposition_n first_o agree_v in_o some_o of_o they_o somewhat_o with_o the_o catholic_n and_o they_o have_v learn_v it_o from_o the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o as_o their_o usual_a practice_n be_v and_o then_o make_v their_o own_o choice_n to_o dissent_v and_o disagree_v at_o their_o pleasure_n as_o the_o enure_v custom_n of_o all_o heretic_n have_v ever_o be_v 45._o his_o first_o proposition_n than_o be_v this_o there_o be_v a_o church_n 1._o of_o christ_n not_o only_o invisible_a but_o also_o visible_a whereto_o suppose_v he_o to_o understand_v of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n for_o otherwise_o he_o say_v nothing_o we_o do_v also_o agree_v as_o their_o bishop_n church_n in_o like_a manner_n may_v be_v suppose_v to_o do_v and_o yet_o can_v i_o speak_v this_o upon_o my_o own_o knowledge_n that_o it_o be_v against_o the_o common_a know_a tenant_n &_o practice_n of_o their_o academical_a school_n for_o there_o the_o question_n be_v among_o the_o most_o forward_a protestant_n a_o ecclesia_fw-la sit_fw-la invisibilis_fw-la whether_o the_o true_a church_n be_v invisible_a and_o yet_o be_v hold_v affirmitive_o to_o wit_n 86._o that_o it_o be_v invisible_a and_o not_o visible_a to_o mansey_n for_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o church_n tend_v to_o flat_a popery_n which_o they_o can_v endure_v 46._o his_o second_o proposition_n be_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n 2._o which_o we_o affirm_v also_o and_o they_o from_o we_o have_v learn_v so_o to_o speak_v and_o yet_o i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o the_o protestant_n puritan_n and_o other_o sectary_n lutheran_n and_o sacramentary_n can_v make_v one_o church_n they_o differ_v so_o fundamental_o among_o themselves_o and_o in_o such_o weighty_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n as_o they_o do_v 47._o his_o three_o assertion_n be_v the_o visible_a church_n be_v a_o catholic_n church_n 3._o m._n rogers_n will_v have_v say_v or_o at_o least_o wise_a shall_v have_v say_v that_o the_o catholic_a be_v a_o visible_a church_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o all_o visible_a church_n be_v not_o catholic_a but_o all_o catholic_n church_n be_v visible_a and_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o this_o his_o incongruity_n of_o speech_n i_o do_v not_o see_v unless_o he_o mean_v thereby_o to_o steal_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a unto_o every_o visible_a congregation_n of_o sectary_n which_o be_v clear_o overthrow_v by_o the_o definition_n and_o large_a explication_n of_o the_o word_n catholic_a set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n 48._o his_o four_o proposition_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v and_o 4._o for_o time_n be_v before_o the_o church_n which_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o scripture_n or_o write_v word_n for_o otherwise_o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o our_o purpose_n it_o contain_v in_o it_o a_o senseless_a &_o gross_a absurdity_n for_o thereupon_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o before_o moses_n time_n the_o first_o writer_n of_o the_o bible_n which_o be_v more_o than_o two_o thousand_o year_n after_o the_o creation_n of_o man_n god_n have_v no_o church_n because_o there_o be_v extant_a no_o write_v word_n or_o scripture_n which_o be_v very_o ridiculous_a to_o affirm_v but_o the_o only_a refuge_n that_o i_o can_v possible_o perceive_v that_o m._n rogers_n have_v leave_v he_o to_o make_v good_a his_o four_o assertion_n in_o prove_v the_o word_n of_o god_n more_o ancient_a than_o the_o church_n be_v to_o fly_v to_o the_o unwritten_a word_n but_o this_o will_v not_o serve_v his_o turn_n neither_o since_o we_o have_v only_o in_o this_o place_n to_o do_v with_o the_o literal_a or_o write_v word_n of_o god_n begin_v
by_o moses_n the_o first_o pen_n man_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o so_o successive_o upon_o sundry_a occasion_n continue_v 49._o m._n rogers_n his_o first_o proposition_n be_v that_o the_o mark_n church_n and_o token_n of_o their_o visible_a church_n be_v the_o due_a and_o true_a administration_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n but_o these_o mark_n be_v not_o admit_v by_o the_o catholic_n but_o worthy_o reject_v for_o that_o they_o be_v as_o hard_o and_o obscure_a to_o find_v out_o and_o as_o much_o controvert_v as_o the_o thing_n itself_o whereof_o they_o shall_v be_v mark_n for_o that_o all_o part_n yea_o all_o sect_n and_o heresy_n do_v pretend_v to_o have_v due_a and_o true_a administration_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o it_o be_v as_o hard_a a_o matter_n to_o determine_v this_o controversy_n as_o the_o other_o viz._n to_o find_v out_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o the_o mark_v of_o antiquity_n universality_n unity_n and_o succession_n before_o mention_v and_o give_v by_o catholic_n for_o such_o be_v tertullians_n 1400._o year_n ago_o when_o he_o write_v that_o excellent_a book_n of_o prescription_n and_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n 1200._o year_n since_o to_o take_v away_o your_o late_a imputation_n and_o denomination_n of_o papist_n unto_o catholic_n be_v so_o clear_a and_o evident_a in_o themselves_o that_o present_o they_o will_v distinguish_v betwixt_o one_o church_n and_o another_o betwixt_o roman_a catholic_n and_o all_o heretical_a sectary_n and_o albeit_o some_o sectary_n be_v press_v therewith_o will_v pretend_v to_o have_v these_o mark_n in_o their_o church_n and_o will_v set_v a_o good_a face_n upon_o the_o matter_n and_o challenge_v they_o also_o yet_o be_v these_o word_n out_o before_o they_o be_v aware_a for_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o evident_a against_o they_o they_o present_o give_v over_o their_o claim_n they_o be_v content_a to_o hold_v hand_n of_o run_v to_o other_o obscure_a mark_n the_o common_a plea_n of_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n of_o the_o due_a and_o true_a administration_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n when_o god_n wot_v they_o have_v neither_o word_n nor_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o catholic_a integrity_n and_o sincerity_n 50._o m._n rogers_n six_o proposition_n about_o the_o church_n be_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n to_o wit_n the_o true_a &_o catholic_n church_n 6._o may_v and_o have_v from_o time_n to_o time_n err_v both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o conversation_n which_o assertion_n the_o catholic_n in_o his_o sense_n do_v hold_v for_o so_o blasphemous_a and_o absurd_a yea_o ridiculous_a also_o as_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o for_o if_o this_o be_v true_a that_o the_o true_a visible_a catholic_a church_n spread_v over_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n can_v err_v and_o induce_v into_o error_n then_o be_v there_o no_o surety_n or_o certainty_n in_o the_o world_n no_o not_o in_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n who_o assure_v we_o the_o contrary_a 51._o but_o let_v we_o take_v a_o view_n of_o m._n roger_n proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n for_o confirm_v this_o his_o six_o assertion_n which_o err_v sure_o be_v so_o fantastical_a and_o impertinent_a for_o any_o consequence_n to_o be_v draw_v from_o they_o so_o absurd_a in_o reason_n and_o ridiculous_a in_o religion_n that_o no_o man_n of_o judgement_n or_o conscience_n can_v read_v they_o without_o indignation_n and_o laughter_n as_o by_o the_o view_n will_v appear_v for_o thus_o he_o set_v they_o down_o in_o his_o own_o word_n only_o i_o will_v add_v the_o inference_n upon_o every_o probation_n out_o of_o scripture_n his_o first_o place_n be_v take_v heed_n matth._n 24._o 4._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v believe_v it_o not_o matth._n 23._o 26._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v beware_v of_o the_o leaven_n of_o the_o pharisye_n and_o of_o the_o leaven_n of_o herod_n mar._n 8._o 15._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v many_o shall_v be_v deceive_v yea_o the_o very_a elect_a be_v it_o possible_a matth._n 24._o 11._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v shall_v he_o find_v faith_n upon_o the_o earth_n luc._n 18._o 8._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v we_o know_v in_o part_n 1_o cor._n 13._o 12._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v beware_v of_o dog_n therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v beware_v of_o evil_a work_n beware_v of_o concision_n philip._n 3._o v._n 2._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v god_n shall_v send_v they_o strong_a illusion_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v lie_n 2._o thess._n 9_o 10._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v and_o be_v not_o this_o a_o sound_a proof_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 52._o these_o be_v those_o clear_a text_n that_o m._n rogers_n bring_v forth_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o universal_a christian_a visible_a catholic_a church_n for_o that_o only_o we_o now_o treat_v of_o may_v be_v deceive_v and_o have_v err_v determine_v matter_n of_o doctrine_n and_o yet_o as_o you_o see_v here_o be_v not_o one_o word_n that_o be_v speak_v or_o may_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o say_v universal_a catholic_a church_n but_o only_a caveat_n give_v to_o the_o church_n to_o beware_v of_o particular_a deceaver_n heretic_n pharisy_n herod_n &_o the_o like_a and_o consequent_o these_o place_n be_v so_o idle_o urge_v and_o so_o absurd_o apply_v by_o the_o author_n that_o i_o shall_v waste_v time_n in_o spend_v any_o more_o labour_n about_o peruse_v they_o any_o further_a only_o one_o of_o his_o place_n i_o will_v but_o touch_v in_o one_o word_n many_o say_v christ_n shall_v be_v deceive_v yea_o the_o very_a elect_a if_o it_o be_v possible_a out_o of_o which_o place_n for_o the_o overthrow_v of_o m._n roger_n proposition_n and_o infer_v the_o clean_a contrary_a assertion_n i_o reason_v thus_o and_o let_v tribunal_n syllogismi_fw-la umpire_n betwixt_o we_o both_o which_o be_v the_o better_a and_o fit_a consequence_n deduce_v out_o of_o this_o place_n if_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o elect_n shall_v be_v deceive_v though_o many_o be_v deceive_v than_o the_o church_n comprehend_v the_o elect_a as_o a_o part_n of_o she_o can_v be_v beceive_v sed_fw-la verum_fw-la primum_fw-la for_o truth_n itself_o have_v speak_v it_o and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o those_o word_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la &_o secundum_fw-la the_o like_a consequence_n i_o will_v infer_v out_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n but_o the_o place_n be_v so_o absurd_o and_o against_o all_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n urge_v that_o they_o be_v not_o long_o to_o be_v stand_v upon_o 53._o the_o like_a miserable_a course_n or_o rather_o more_o pitiful_a if_o possible_o it_o may_v be_v do_v he_o take_v to_o prove_v the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o proposition_n which_o be_v that_o the_o say_v catholic_a visible_a church_n may_v err_v in_o determine_v matter_n of_o life_n and_o manner_n for_o that_o be_v the_o question_n and_o not_o his_o idle_a word_n of_o err_a in_o conversation_n and_o first_o he_o do_v alleag_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n iniquity_n shall_v be_v increase_v and_o the_o love_n of_o many_o shall_v wax_v can_v matth._n 24._o 12._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o determine_v matter_n of_o life_n and_o manner_n second_o he_o cit_v that_o of_o s._n paul_n restore_v &c_n &c_n lest_o thou_o also_o be_v tempt_v gal._n 6._o 1._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o determine_v matter_n of_o life_n and_o manner_n three_o i_o do_v not_o the_o good_a thing_n which_o i_o will_v but_o the_o evil_n which_o i_o will_v not_o that_o do_v i_o if_o i_o do_v that_o which_o i_o will_v not_o it_o be_v no_o more_o i_o that_o do_v it_o but_o the_o sin_n that_o dwell_v in_o i_o rom._n 7._o 19_o 20._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o determine_v matter_n of_o life_n and_o manner_n four_o there_o be_v a_o fight_n even_o in_o the_o best_a man_n and_o member_n of_o christ_n rom._n 7._o 23_o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o determine_v matter_n belong_v to_o life_n and_o manner_n for_o this_o must_v be_v his_o conclusion_n out_o of_o every_o one_o of_o these_o place_n as_o his_o former_a of_o doctrine_n be_v out_o of_o the_o other_o and_o be_v not_o these_o goodly_a argument_n to_o prove_v his_o assertion_n his_o assertion_n as_o you_o have_v often_o hear_v be_v that_o the_o visible_a catholic_a church_n may_v err_v in_o determine_v matter_n belong_v to_o manner_n to_o wit_n in_o define_v and_o final_o determine_v this_o be_v good_a that_o be_v bad_a this_o be_v lawful_a that_o unlawful_a and_o the_o like_a and_o he_o come_v in_o with_o his_o misapply_v text_n to_o prove_v that_o particular_a man_n may_v have_v infirmity_n in_o they_o and_o fight_v of_o their_o passion_n or_o concupiscence_n do_v he_o not_o hit_v the_o nail_n on_o the_o head_n
to_o make_v good_a against_o they_o in_o the_o particular_a carriage_n and_o passage_n of_o this_o present_a business_n of_o counsel_n let_v we_o but_o leave_v the_o barky_a rind_n and_o outward_a cork_n and_o enter_v into_o the_o inward_a marrow_n and_o substance_n that_o be_v let_v we_o give_v no_o credit_n to_o their_o word_n but_o look_v into_o their_o deed_n and_o we_o shall_v easy_o discern_v yea_o the_o matter_n will_v disclose_v itself_o for_o to_o set_v their_o word_n aside_o who_o we_o have_v ever_o find_v contrary_a in_o their_o deed_n if_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v sincere_o embrace_v and_o receive_v for_o catholic_a and_o orthodox_n these_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n which_o do_v resemble_v comprehend_v and_o present_v the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n for_o more_o than_o four_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n together_o after_o christ_n then_o must_v it_o follow_v if_o they_o mean_v as_o they_o say_v and_o that_o their_o word_n shall_v not_o prove_v wind_n that_o the_o english_a church_n and_o our_o lay_a parliament_n must_v acknowledge_v and_o admit_v also_o that_o doctrine_n for_o catholic_n and_o orthodox_n which_o without_o impeachment_n controllement_fw-fr or_o contradiction_n of_o any_o can_v be_v substantial_o prove_v to_o have_v be_v teach_v and_o hold_v in_o this_o visible_a universal_a church_n whereof_o these_o four_o council_n collective_o represent_v the_o whole_a body_n for_o all_o that_o tyme._n which_o foresay_a doctrine_n that_o both_o it_o and_o every_o point_n thereof_o pass_v for_o so_o many_o age_n uncontrolled_a this_o one_o reason_n may_v suffice_v to_o prove_v instead_o of_o all_o for_o that_o the_o say_v doctrine_n shall_v otherwise_o have_v be_v note_v espy_v out_o reprehend_v and_o censure_v by_o some_o of_o these_o counsel_n else_o have_v they_o not_o do_v their_o duty_n neither_o have_v they_o be_v so_o vigilant_a for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o whole_a body_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v if_o have_v condemn_v some_o heresy_n as_o they_o do_v they_o have_v wink_v at_o other_o which_o once_o to_o imagine_v of_o a_o ambrose_n a_o augustine_n &_o a_o hierome_n for_o the_o latin_a church_n a_o basill_n a_o chrysostome_n and_o a_o athanasius_n for_o the_o greek_a nay_o to_o suppose_v it_o and_o that_o confident_o though_o most_o impudent_o of_o all_o the_o great_a saint_n and_o learned_a doctor_n in_o the_o world_n together_o this_o can_v be_v no_o less_o than_o senseless_a absurdity_n gross_a stupidity_n yea_o heathenish_a impiety_n when_o as_o the_o least_o of_o these_o which_o i_o have_v name_v be_v for_o learning_n able_a to_o have_v resist_v the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o for_o their_o zeal_n will_v have_v spare_v none_o in_o a_o point_n of_o error_n or_o heresy_n as_o i_o may_v instance_n and_o prove_v by_o tertullian_n origen_n and_o s._n cyprian_a be_v any_o of_o these_o though_o never_o so_o great_a by_o the_o rest_n spare_v be_v any_o former_a merit_n though_o never_o so_o many_o respect_v if_o once_o they_o presume_v to_o innovate_v the_o least_o error_n whatsoever_o and_o therefore_o to_o strike_v at_o the_o point_n i_o aim_v at_o in_o the_o period_n of_o the_o conclusion_n do_v the_o english_a church_n and_o parliament_n admit_v all_o the_o doctrine_n that_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o continue_a without_o the_o impeachment_n of_o any_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o zealous_a &_o vigilant_a pastor_n in_o the_o church_n i_o think_v it_o will_v make_v great_a difficulty_n and_o let_v it_o reject_v they_o or_o any_o of_o they_o there_o need_v no_o more_o to_o prove_v that_o church_n to_o be_v heretical_a let_v it_o admit_v they_o it_o prove_v itself_o by_o departure_n from_o they_o and_o their_o doctrine_n to_o be_v apostatical_a for_o that_o it_o hould_v not_o the_o same_o point_n of_o faith_n with_o these_o four_o first_o counsel_n which_o it_o make_v show_v to_o receive_v and_o embrace_v in_o a_o word_n let_v it_o admit_v they_o or_o reject_v they_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o wipe_v away_o the_o blot_n and_o blemish_n imputation_n and_o innovation_n of_o damnable_a error_n from_o their_o church_n for_o better_a understanding_n whereof_o as_o also_o of_o some_o other_o particular_n thereto_o belong_v and_o hereupon_o necessary_o depend_v i_o have_v think_v good_a to_o decipher_v out_o these_o ensue_a consideration_n the_o first_o consideration_n my_o first_o consideration_n which_o i_o promise_v as_o the_o very_a err_v groundwork_n and_o foundation_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v this_o that_o the_o parliament_n and_o church_n of_o england_n admit_v these_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n of_o nyce_n constantinople_n ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n for_o orthodox_n and_o true_o catholic_a as_o represent_v in_o their_o bishop_n the_o complete_a and_o entire_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o their_o several_a age_n must_v needs_o acknowledge_v in_o like_a manner_n that_o for_o these_o first_o four_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n or_o rather_o five_o hundred_o for_o that_o it_o be_v not_o probable_a nay_o possible_a that_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o fifty_o year_n the_o same_o shall_v now_o fail_v which_o have_v already_o by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n his_o promise_n continue_v four_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n the_o locis_fw-la true_a catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n consist_v not_o only_o of_o the_o elect_a and_o consequent_o be_v invisible_a but_o of_o good_a and_o bad_a and_o thereupon_o be_v visible_a under_o visible_a head_n and_o this_o be_v figure_v by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o net_n that_o catch_v both_o good_a and_o bad_a fish_n and_o by_o the_o field_n that_o bring_v forth_o good_a corn_n and_o weed_n and_o further_o that_o this_o visible_a external_a church_n in_o those_o day_n be_v the_o very_a same_o whereof_o christ_n word_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v when_o he_o give_v this_o in_o charge_n to_o one_o upon_o occasion_n and_o supposal_n of_o 15._o a_o complaint_n make_v against_o his_o brother_n which_o if_o he_o succeed_v not_o then_o dic_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la tell_v the_o church_n as_o also_o that_o other_o of_o s._n paul_n that_o the_o church_n be_v columna_fw-la &_o firmamentum_fw-la veritatis_fw-la the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n so_o as_o if_o a_o man_n in_o those_o day_n will_v have_v have_v any_o controversy_n in_o religion_n debate_v and_o resolve_v if_o he_o will_v have_v know_v what_o scripture_n the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n have_v commit_v unto_o the_o custody_n of_o the_o church_n for_o canonical_a &_o authentical_a and_o further_o if_o he_o desire_v to_o know_v which_o they_o be_v how_o they_o may_v be_v know_v from_o counterfeit_a how_o they_o may_v be_v true_o sense_v and_o right_o understand_v what_o and_o how_o many_o sacrament_n be_v leave_v by_o christ_n unto_o his_o church_n which_o they_o be_v what_o be_v their_o effect_n &_o operation_n how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v administer_v and_o such_o other_o like_a and_o if_o he_o be_v a_o jew_n or_o gentille_n that_o thus_o demand_v question_v these_o doubt_n and_o will_v upon_o the_o resolution_n thereof_o become_v a_o christian_n but_o be_v unlearned_a will_v be_v instruct_v in_o all_o these_o case_n and_o the_o like_a he_o be_v to_o have_v make_v his_o repair_n and_o recourse_n unto_o this_o external_a visible_a church_n and_o to_o have_v stand_v in_o all_o point_n whatsoever_o unto_o her_o final_a determination_n decision_n direction_n instruction_n and_o perpetual_a government_n in_o all_o these_o first_o five_o age_n without_o malapert_v repugnancy_n or_o obstinate_a reply_n if_o he_o ever_o intend_v to_o be_v save_v and_o if_o upon_o any_o animosity_n or_o pervicacity_n any_o man_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o that_o church_n in_o all_o that_o time_n either_o for_o interpret_n scripture_n in_o his_o own_o sense_n according_a to_o a_o private_a spirit_n or_o for_o pervert_v or_o innovate_a de_fw-la novo_fw-la de_fw-la svo_fw-la of_o his_o own_o head_n or_o brain_n in_o any_o the_o least_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n as_o the_o protestant_n do_v both_o his_o damnation_n be_v by_o all_o hold_v and_o conclude_v for_o certain_a except_o he_o repent_v and_o listen_v yea_o and_o obey_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n his_o mother_n that_o seek_v to_o reclaine_v he_o for_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o church_n be_v ever_o hold_v for_o god_n his_o high_a tribunal_n upon_o earth_n and_o therefore_o irrefragable_a since_o the_o tribunal_n of_o heaven_n stand_v expect_v what_o be_v here_o do_v by_o the_o church_n upon_o earth_n be_v ever_o ready_a to_o loose_v or_o bind_v to_o deliver_v over_o unto_o satan_n or_o to_o release_v from_o the_o band_n of_o sin_n error_n and_o heresy_n according_a unto_o the_o former_a pass_v doom_n and_o sentence_n of_o the_o church_n as_o among_o other_o father_n s._n john_n chrysostome_n in_o his_o
psalm_n do_v foresee_v this_o abominable_a and_o detestable_a voice_n of_o some_o that_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o catholic_a visible_a church_n have_v perish_v and_o fall_v into_o apostasy_n a_o speech_n full_a of_o presumption_n and_o falsehood_n sustain_v with_o no_o truth_n enlighten_v with_o no_o wisdom_n season_v with_o no_o salt_n a_o vain_a temerarious_a headlong_o &_o pernicious_a speech_n so_o s._n augustine_n and_o then_o further_o some_o few_o line_n after_o the_o same_o father_n bring_v in_o the_o say_v visible_a church_n of_o his_o age_n to_o expostulate_v with_o those_o furious_a and_o frantic_a donatist_n in_o this_o manner_n quid_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la nescio_fw-la qui_fw-la recedentes_fw-la à_fw-la i_o murmurant_fw-la contra_fw-la i_o quid_fw-la est_fw-la quòd_fw-la perditi_fw-la etc._n etc._n what_o be_v the_o cause_n i_o know_v not_o why_o certain_a people_n that_o go_v forth_o of_o i_o do_v murmur_n against_o i_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o certain_a lose_a fellow_n do_v contend_v and_o say_v that_o i_o be_o perish_v for_o this_o be_v their_o say_n that_o i_o be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o be_o not_o now_o etc._n etc._n the_o scripture_n say_v they_o have_v be_v fulfil_v for_o that_o all_o nation_n have_v believe_v but_o the_o church_n have_v apostate_v and_o perish_v throughout_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n when_o we_o urge_v the_o promise_n of_o christ_n behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o unto_o the_o ●0_n consummation_n of_o the_o world_n here_o they_o say_v that_o christ_n promise_v to_o be_v with_o the_o church_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o that_o he_o do_v foresee_v that_o they_o the_o faction_n of_o donatus_n shall_v arise_v and_o continue_v the_o true_a church_n upon_o earth_n so._n s._n augustine_n of_o and_o to_o the_o donatist_n and_o sure_o nothing_o can_v occur_v and_o be_v represent_v unto_o our_o understanding_n more_o conform_a and_o answerable_a unto_o the_o sense_n judgement_n voice_n agreement_n and_o speech_n of_o the_o sectary_n of_o these_o our_o time_n concern_v their_o false_a imputation_n and_o most_o unjust_a calumniation_n against_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n 17._o now_o if_o this_o grave_n and_o holy_a father_n s._n augustine_n one_o of_o the_o chief_a pillar_n of_o the_o latyn_a church_n in_o his_o day_n speak_v in_o the_o voice_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o say_v universal_a catholic_a sectary_n church_n in_o his_o age_n do_v so_o grievous_o and_o dreadful_o censure_v this_o speech_n and_o blasphemous_a slander_n of_o the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n so_o trivial_a and_o familiar_a unto_o protestant_n now_o adays_o as_o that_o he_o call_v it_o impudent_a abominable_a detestable_a presumptuous_a false_a foolish_a rash_a temeratious_a and_o pernicious_a as_o you_o have_v hear_v if_o he_o condemn_v even_o to_o the_o lowermost_a pit_n of_o hell_n all_o those_o that_o frequent_a the_o same_o call_z and_o account_v they_o for_o perditos_fw-la lose_v and_o damn_a people_n recedentes_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la apostate_v from_o the_o church_n upon_o a_o false_a surmise_n of_o their_o own_o foolish_a fancy_n suppose_v that_o the_o church_n itself_o have_v apostate_v or_o may_v fall_v into_o apostasy_n what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o protestant_n that_o do_v the_o same_o and_o stand_v in_o the_o very_a same_o case_n 18._o but_o here_o it_o may_v be_v perhaps_o some_o man_n will_v reply_v that_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o place_n before_o cite_v say_v not_o that_o the_o visible_a church_n can_v apostate_n or_o perish_v but_o that_o it_o have_v not_o so_o do_v and_o fall_v away_o in_o his_o time_n when_o the_o donatist_n do_v false_o impute_v the_o same_o unto_o it_o but_o that_o it_o may_v err_v and_o fall_v away_o from_o truth_n in_o time_n to_o come_v that_o s._n augustine_n do_v not_o deny_v 19_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o albeit_o s._n augustine_n totidem_fw-la verbis_fw-la do_v not_o say_v in_o so_o many_o word_n the_o church_n in_o time_n to_o come_v may_v not_o apostatate_v yet_o in_o pure_a force_n of_o argument_n and_o true_a substance_n of_o matter_n he_o do_v affirm_v it_o in_o that_o he_o allege_v against_o the_o donatist_n and_o urge_v to_o convince_v they_o the_o very_a promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n make_v unto_o his_o disciple_n and_o in_o their_o person_n unto_o the_o church_n for_o ever_o ecce_fw-la ego_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la sum_fw-la usque_fw-la in_o consummationem_fw-la saeculi_fw-la behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o unto_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n which_o promise_n hold_v for_o all_o time_n in_o s._n augustine_n his_o judgement_n even_o until_o the_o world_n general_a consummation_n and_o therefore_o the_o same_o father_n in_o another_o place_n write_v upon_o another_o psalm_n have_v first_o show_v how_o the_o church_n be_v the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o hill_n he_o further_o add_v sedfortè_fw-la ista_fw-la civitas_fw-la quae_fw-la mundum_fw-la tenuit_fw-la universum_fw-la aliquando_fw-la evertetur_fw-la absit_fw-la deus_fw-la enim_fw-la fundavit_fw-la eam_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la si_fw-mi ergo_fw-la deus_fw-la fundavit_fw-la 47._o eam_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la quid_fw-la time_n ne_fw-la cadat_fw-la but_o happy_o this_o city_n that_o have_v possess_v the_o whole_a world_n shall_v in_o time_n to_o come_v be_v overthrow_v god_n forbid_v for_o god_n have_v found_v the_o same_o for_o ever_o as_o the_o psalmist_n speak_v if_o therefore_o god_n have_v found_v the_o same_o for_o ever_o why_o do_v thou_o fear_v lest_o this_o foundation_n may_v fall_v which_o very_o point_n s._n augustine_n repeat_v again_o in_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr symbolo_fw-la and_o the_o five_o chapter_n to_o show_v his_o constant_a and_o unuariable_a resolution_n in_o this_o matter_n of_o the_o church_n 20._o and_o here_o i_o may_v allege_v father_n upon_o father_n greek_n upon_o latin_a and_o produce_v so_o many_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a worthy_n and_o ancient_a father_n as_o may_v suffice_v to_o fill_v a_o large_a volume_n and_o all_o of_o they_o tend_v direct_o to_o apostatate_v this_o effect_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o visible_a church_n plant_v by_o our_o saviour_n he_o be_v the_o foundation_n stone_n and_o by_o his_o apostle_n and_o spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n shall_v never_o perish_v or_o apostatate_n from_o christ_n by_o any_o the_o least_o damnable_a error_n or_o heresy_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n &_o christ_n his_o second_o come_v unto_o judgement_n and_o to_o prove_v this_o they_o do_v all_o of_o they_o allege_v and_o bring_v many_o pregnant_a and_o evident_a place_n of_o scripture_n 21._o as_o for_o example_n these_o two_o here_o urge_v by_o s._n augustine_n as_o also_o that_o plain_a text_n utter_v by_o way_n of_o promise_n unto_o his_o disciple_n matth._n 16._o by_o our_o saviour_n porte_fw-fr inferorum_fw-la non_fw-la praevalebunt_fw-la adversus_fw-la eam_fw-la the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o this_o church_n &_o on_o this_o place_n s._n chrysostome_n dilate_v himself_o much_o as_o be_v by_o occasion_n treat_v upon_o the_o 148._o psalm_n and_o in_o a_o homily_n make_v at_o that_o time_n when_o he_o be_v to_o be_v expel_v from_o constantinople_n he_o infer_v these_o word_n upon_o that_o place_n quòd_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la credis_fw-la verbo_fw-la &_o rebus_fw-la ipsis_fw-la operibus_fw-la crede_fw-la if_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v christ_n word_n the_o thing_n themselves_o here_o speak_v believe_v his_o work_n how_o many_o tyrant_n have_v go_v about_o to_o impugn_v the_o church_n etc._n etc._n where_o be_v they_o that_o go_v about_o these_o thing_n quomodo_fw-la impurissime_fw-la diabole_fw-la ecclesiante_fw-la putas_fw-la posse_fw-la deijcere_fw-la how_o do_v thou_o think_v thou_o most_o impure_a devil_n that_o thou_o can_v overthrow_v the_o church_n etc._n etc._n which_o demand_v this_o bless_a father_n will_v never_o have_v urge_v unto_o the_o wicked_a spirit_n if_o the_o devil_n may_v have_v reply_v that_o in_o time_n to_o come_v he_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o overthrow_v it_o by_o sow_v the_o tare_n of_o ignorance_n error_n and_o heresy_n in_o it_o and_o now_o that_o s._n chrysostome_n mean_v of_o the_o external_a visible_a church_n it_o be_v more_o than_o evident_a by_o the_o instance_n that_o he_o bring_v of_o the_o horrible_a and_o inhuman_a persecution_n raise_v and_o stir_v up_o by_o infidel_n and_o heretical_a emperor_n against_o the_o same_o most_o holy_a church_n 22._o and_o s._n cyprian_n that_o ancient_a and_o renown_a martyr_n eccles._n treat_v of_o this_o argument_n sound_v forth_o this_o eulogy_n in_o praise_n of_o the_o church_n adulterari_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la sponsa_fw-la christi_fw-la incorruptaest_n pudica_fw-la est_fw-la domum_fw-la unam_fw-la novit_fw-la unius_fw-la cubiculi_fw-la sanctitatem_fw-la casto_fw-la pudore_fw-la custodit_fw-la the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v adulterate_v she_o be_v unspotted_a she_o be_v chaste_a she_o know_v one_o house_n she_o keep_v the_o sanctity_n of_o one_o chamber_n one_o bed_n and_o that_o
council_n of_o trent_n causas_fw-la for_o iustifi_n of_o which_o cause_v eight_o condition_n be_v require_v by_o they_o to_o be_v observe_v in_o that_o council_n whereof_o the_o four_o be_v that_o the_o decision_n be_v make_v in_o all_o controversy_n only_o out_o of_o scripture_n and_o not_o out_o of_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n or_o tradition_n the_o five_o be_v that_o decision_n be_v again_o make_v not_o according_a to_o the_o plurality_n of_o voice_n or_o suffrage_n but_o according_a unto_o the_o norm_a and_o rule_v of_o god_n counsel_n word_n but_o what_o this_o norm_a or_o rule_n be_v they_o expound_v not_o but_o do_v leave_v it_o as_o they_o find_v it_o still_o to_o be_v contend_v about_o whereunto_o if_o we_o adjoine_v two_o other_o condition_n of_o they_o which_o be_v the_o last_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o protestant_a minister_n may_v give_v voice_n equal_o with_o bishop_n in_o decide_v of_o all_o question_n &_o that_o if_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o defend_v their_o cause_n yet_o not_o only_o their_o person_n shall_v be_v secure_a but_o their_o cause_n also_o not_o to_o be_v conden_v for_o heresy_n these_o i_o say_v if_o we_o add_v as_o the_o late_a unto_o the_o former_a we_o shall_v plain_o discern_v that_o they_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o least_o thought_n to_o stand_v unto_o that_o council_n at_o all_o but_o to_o their_o own_o head_n and_o by_o these_o to_o their_o own_o unreasonable_a condition_n and_o unconscionable_a to_o make_v their_o controversy_n and_o heresy_n endless_a and_o indeterminable_a for_o if_o every_o man_n or_o at_o least_o every_o minister_n have_v authority_n to_o determine_v out_o of_o god_n word_n when_o will_v there_o be_v a_o end_n 33._o and_o here_o you_o see_v the_o small_a or_o rather_o no_o hope_n that_o be_v of_o agreement_n betwixt_o protestant_n and_o catholic_n by_o way_n of_o general_n counsel_n and_o that_o the_o protestant_n reserve_v themselves_o only_a to_o scripture_n for_o the_o decision_n of_o matter_n and_o not_o admit_v general_a counsel_n and_o father_n to_o be_v umpiring_a judge_n of_o the_o sense_n &_o mean_v thereof_o they_o tread_v first_o into_o the_o step_n and_o rake_v into_o the_o sacrilegious_a ash_n of_o all_o former_a ancient_a condemn_a heretic_n even_o for_o this_o very_a point_n condemn_v by_o the_o church_n in_o many_o of_o her_o general_a counsel_n and_o second_o by_o such_o condition_n they_o make_v themselves_o sure_a and_o secure_a from_o be_v condemn_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o they_o will_v yield_v thereunto_o and_o the_o self_n same_o fundamental_a reason_n or_o rather_o desperate_a refuge_n and_o evasion_n of_o they_o in_o profane_v and_o abuse_v this_o sacred_a sanctuary_n of_o scripture_n by_o their_o profane_a spirit_n and_o unhallowed_a gloss_n hould_v also_o for_o their_o never_o agree_v among_o themselves_o by_o meeting_n conference_n colloquy_n disputation_n synod_n or_o counsel_n for_o that_o the_o lutheran_n and_o sacramentary_n whether_o zwinglians_n or_o caluinist_n for_o of_o these_o two_o only_o i_o mean_v to_o speak_v at_o this_o time_n stand_v upon_o this_o resolute_a principle_n on_o all_o hand_n that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v determine_v but_o by_o scripture_n and_o then_o each_o one_o interpret_n that_o scripture_n different_o from_o the_o other_o &_o acknowledge_v no_o judge_n on_o neither_o party_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o they_o shall_v ever_o come_v to_o any_o end_n of_o determination_n 34._o and_o this_o will_v evident_o appear_v if_o we_o cast_v our_o eye_n upon_o those_o conventicle_n meeting_n conference_n synod_n counsel_n &_o colloquy_n hold_v betwixt_o these_o reform_a brethren_n for_o the_o space_n of_o threescore_o year_n together_o to_o wit_n from_o the_o year_n 1530._o unto_o the_o year_n 1590._o which_o be_v set_v forth_o &c_n by_o stanislaus_n rescius_fw-la ambassador_n unto_o the_o king_n of_o polonia_n at_o naples_n upon_o the_o year_n 1596._o &_o which_o do_v amount_v to_o above_o threescore_o synod_n &_o counsel_n &_o meeting_n hold_v at_o smalcaldium_n frankesord_n constance_n tygure_n wittemberge_n berna_n ratisbone_n spire_n norimberge_n lipsia_n worm_n luneburge_n maulnbourne_n petricovia_n varadine_n gratz_n brunswick_n dresda_n alba_n julia_n cracovia_n and_o diverse_a other_o place_n all_o these_o and_o many_o more_o if_o we_o look_v into_o with_o a_o indifferent_a eye_n we_o shall_v ever_o find_v meeting_n that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o conclude_v any_o peace_n in_o religion_n or_o reconcile_n of_o their_o controversy_n by_o these_o synod_n and_o counsel_n as_o that_o they_o depart_v far_o great_a enemy_n and_o more_o disagree_v in_o their_o opinion_n then_o when_o they_o first_o meet_v witness_n their_o departure_n at_o one_o meeting_n of_o they_o above_o mention_a when_o they_o will_v neither_o give_v nor_o take_v dextras_fw-la fraternitatis_fw-la nor_o dextras_fw-la humanitatis_fw-la fellowship_n of_o fraternity_n nor_o fellowship_n of_o humanity_n which_o be_v a_o token_n that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o union_n nor_o any_o mean_n leave_v they_o to_o come_v unto_o it_o and_o consequent_o that_o the_o example_n and_o precedent_n of_o these_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n that_o determine_v with_o authority_n and_o uniform_a judgement_n the_o controversy_n of_o their_o time_n over_o all_o the_o world_n do_v prejudice_n all_o together_o and_o condemn_v the_o protestant_n of_o our_o age_n and_o do_v convince_v that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o their_o spirit_n or_o religion_n and_o that_o neither_o general_n national_n provincial_a or_o particular_a counsel_n synod_n etc._n or_o meeting_n can_v bring_v themselves_o to_o any_o concord_n or_o agreement_n together_o especial_o division_n and_o dissension_n be_v a_o note_n as_o it_o be_v ascribe_v by_o all_o ancient_a father_n peculiar_a unto_o heretic_n that_o they_o be_v always_o irreconciliable_a and_o divide_v among_o themselves_o and_o this_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o my_o second_o consideration_n the_o three_o consideration_n my_o three_o consideration_n be_v that_o by_o read_v these_o counsel_n i_o do_v not_o only_o find_v a_o complete_a hierarchy_n manner_n and_o ecclesiastical_a regiment_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o those_o former_a ancient_a time_n consist_v of_o bishop_n archbishop_n patriarch_n and_o prelate_n govern_v the_o say_a church_n conform_a to_o that_o of_o the_o catholic_n of_o our_o day_n and_o whole_o different_a from_o the_o protestant_n church_n which_o they_o call_v reform_v though_o in_o my_o judgement_n they_o may_v more_o true_o be_v call_v deform_v in_o that_o they_o have_v take_v away_o all_o such_o hierarchy_n of_o bishop_n except_o only_o a_o small_a glimpse_n thereof_o reserve_v in_o england_n for_o a_o show_n but_o in_o many_o other_o particular_a point_n also_o i_o plain_o perceive_v their_o sense_n opinion_n and_o judgment_n to_o be_v far_o dissonant_n from_o these_o of_o our_o protestant_n whether_o we_o regard_v their_o practice_n for_o conversation_n and_o reformation_n of_o our_o manner_n or_o respect_v their_o doctrine_n for_o instruction_n and_o information_n of_o our_o judgment_n whereof_o god_n assist_v i_o shall_v lay_v forth_o some_o few_o brief_a and_o punctual_a observation_n purposely_o pretermit_v infinite_a other_o that_o may_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o foresay_a four_o general_a counsel_n 36._o in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o four_o i_o mean_v nicen_n and_o the_o 3._o canon_n thereof_o these_o word_n represent_v themselves_o unto_o my_o view_n omnibus_fw-la modis_fw-la interdixit_fw-la sancta_fw-la synodus_fw-la ut_fw-la neque_fw-la episcopo_fw-la neque_fw-la presbytero_fw-la neque_fw-la diacono_fw-la neque_fw-la ulli_fw-la clericorum_fw-la omnino_fw-la licere_fw-la habere_fw-la secum_fw-la mulierem_fw-la extraneam_fw-la nisi_fw-la fortèmater_fw-la aut_fw-la soror_fw-la aut_fw-la avia_fw-la aut_fw-la amita_fw-la vel_fw-la matertera_fw-la sit_fw-la in_o his_o namque_fw-la personis_fw-la &_o harum_fw-la similibus_fw-la omnis_fw-la quae_fw-la ex_fw-la mulieribus_fw-la est_fw-la suspitio_fw-la declinatur_fw-la qui_fw-la aliter_fw-la praeter_fw-la haec_fw-la agitpericlitetur_fw-la de_fw-la clero_fw-la svo_fw-la the_o holy_a synod_n do_v forbid_v by_o all_o mean_n and_o determine_v it_o to_o be_v unlawful_a for_o any_o bishop_n priest_n deacon_n or_o any_o other_o of_o the_o clergy_n to_o have_v any_o extern_a woman_n with_o they_o except_o perhaps_o it_o be_v their_o mother_n sister_n grandmother_n or_o aunt_n by_o father_n or_o mother_n side_n for_o in_o these_o all_o suspicion_n that_o may_v arise_v about_o dwell_v with_o woman_n be_v decline_v and_o he_o that_o shall_v do_v contrary_a to_o this_o shall_v lose_v his_o clergy_n thus_o that_o first_o and_o famous_a council_n decree_v ratify_v and_o enact_v for_o the_o angelical_a continency_n of_o the_o clergy_n in_o those_o day_n 37._o and_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o this_o holy_a council_n be_v according_a to_o the_o plain_a purport_n of_o the_o word_n as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o canon_n to_o wit_n that_o clergy_n man_n can_v not_o marry_v after_o they_o
ter_z simul_fw-la in_o faciem_fw-la eorum_fw-la &_o aures_fw-la insufflando_fw-la breathe_v three_o time_n one_o after_o a_o other_o on_o their_o face_n and_o ear_n and_o so_o we_o catechise_v consecrate_v and_o cure_v they_o ordain_v that_o they_o live_v a_o great_a while_n in_o our_o church_n and_o hear_v the_o scripture_n and_o then_o we_o do_v baptize_v they_o so_o enact_v that_o ancient_a canon_n conclude_v by_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o bishop_n and_o now_o whether_o this_o antiquity_n be_v more_o observe_v or_o better_o resemble_v by_o the_o protestant_n or_o roman_a church_n i_o leave_v the_o point_n to_o every_o man_n to_o consider_v of_o for_o intend_v brevity_n i_o mean_v not_o to_o prosecute_v matter_n at_o large_a but_o only_o to_o point_v at_o these_o two_o thing_n by_o the_o way_n that_o may_v show_v conformity_n or_o deformity_n between_o that_o ancient_a church_n and_o the_o protestant_n or_o catholic_a roman_a church_n at_o this_o day_n 44._o out_o of_o the_o three_o council_n hold_v at_o ephesus_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n 42_o 8._o sundry_a weighty_a point_n occur_v and_o represent_v themselves_o worthy_a of_o observation_n albeit_o all_o of_o they_o be_v over_o long_o here_o to_o be_v recite_v and_o first_o i_o remember_v the_o manner_n of_o proceed_v and_o condemn_v of_o nestorius_n the_o archhereticke_n as_o it_o be_v most_o faithful_o record_v ephesus_n by_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n in_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o commonitorium_fw-la the_o 42._o chapter_n and_o it_o be_v lay_v down_o by_o he_o who_o live_v in_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o council_n and_o for_o aught_o we_o know_v may_v be_v present_a there_o at_o in_o this_o manner_n this_o council_n of_o ephesus_n discuss_v and_o reason_v touch_v the_o establish_n of_o some_o rule_n of_o faith_n lest_o any_o profane_a novelty_n like_v to_o the_o armenian_a treachery_n may_v creep_v into_o this_o council_n all_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n and_o priest_n thither_o assemble_v which_o be_v almost_o 200._o conclude_v and_o agree_v upon_o this_o as_o best_a and_o most_o catholic_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o opinion_n and_o judgment_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n shall_v be_v bring_v forth_o before_o the_o council_n such_o father_n as_o have_v be_v either_o martyr_n or_o consessor_n or_o at_o least_o constant_a catholic_a priest_n and_o according_a unto_o their_o joint_a consent_n and_o unamine_fw-la decree_n the_o point_n then_o controvert_v betwixt_o nestorius_n and_o s._n cyrill_n shall_v be_v decide_v and_o final_o determine_v this_o be_v the_o rule_n and_o canon_n of_o faith_n first_o enact_v and_o according_a unto_o this_o nestorius_n as_o contrary_a to_o catholic_a verity_n be_v condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n and_o bless_a s._n cyrill_n be_v judge_v consonant_a unto_o antiquity_n so_o vincentius_n and_o now_o will_v the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o make_v show_v of_o receive_v this_o council_n stand_v to_o this_o rule_n and_o canon_n of_o faith_n about_o the_o examine_n of_o doctrine_n by_o the_o father_n enact_v and_o put_v in_o practice_n by_o this_o council_n against_o nestorius_n and_o will_v they_o submit_v all_o their_o judgment_n unto_o the_o assembly_n of_o father_n as_o this_o council_n do_v 45._o my_o second_o observation_n out_o of_o this_o council_n be_v this_o that_o when_o great_a stir_n and_o trouble_n be_v expect_v by_o the_o pious_a and_o religious_a emperor_n theodosius_n and_o valentinianus_n by_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a concourse_n of_o people_n of_o all_o sort_n unto_o that_o place_n especial_o many_o favourite_n of_o nestorius_n the_o archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n against_o who_o this_o council_n be_v gather_v it_o seem_v necessary_a unto_o the_o say_a emperor_n to_o send_v thither_o a_o earl_n of_o their_o court_n name_v candidianus_n who_o shall_v represent_v their_o person_n for_o see_v peace_n and_o good_a order_n keep_v but_o yet_o with_o express_a protestation_n that_o it_o belong_v not_o unto_o they_o imperat._n nor_o any_o other_o secular_a man_n to_o have_v any_o deal_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n in_o that_o council_n and_o this_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o i_o observe_v which_o now_o follow_v candidianum_fw-la say_v they_o praeclarissimum_fw-la religiosorum_fw-la domesticorum_fw-la comitem_fw-la ad_fw-la sacram_fw-la pestram_fw-la synodum_fw-la abire_fw-la iussimus_fw-la sed_fw-la ea_fw-la lege_fw-la &_o conditione_n ut_fw-la tum_fw-la quaestionibus_fw-la &_o controversiis_fw-la quae_fw-la circa_fw-la fidei_fw-la dogmata_fw-la incidunt_fw-la nihil_fw-la quicquam_fw-la common_a habeat_fw-la nefas_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la qui_fw-la sanctissimorum_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la numero_fw-la &_o catalogo_fw-la adseriptus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la illum_fw-la ecclesiastitis_fw-la negotijs_fw-la &_o consultationibꝰ_n seize_v immiscere_fw-la we_o have_v command_v the_o most_o honourable_a count_n candidian_n one_o of_o our_o religious_a family_n to_o go_v unto_o your_o holy_a synod_n but_o with_o this_o charge_n and_o condition_n that_o he_o have_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o do_v with_o any_o question_n of_o controversy_n that_o fall_v out_o about_o consultation_n matter_n of_o faith_n for_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o he_o that_o be_v not_o a_o bishop_n to_o meddle_v with_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n or_o consultation_n so_o those_o two_o emperor_n which_o convince_v sufficient_o that_o they_o hold_v not_o themselves_o for_o head_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o judge_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n but_o inferior_a unto_o bishop_n in_o that_o behalf_n and_o will_v the_o church_n of_o england_n admit_v this_o council_n admit_v this_o also_o 46._o but_o now_o as_o on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o religious_a emperor_n disclaim_v from_o this_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n over_o the_o council_n so_o i_o find_v that_o celestinus_fw-la then_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o same_o to_o appertain_v unto_o he_o and_o it_o be_v by_o the_o whole_a council_n without_o either_o opposition_n or_o contradiction_n grant_v unto_o he_o for_o first_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o be_v present_a himself_o he_o design_v and_o depute_a s._n cyrill_n archbishop_n of_o alexandria_n to_o be_v his_o substitute_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o own_o letter_n read_z and_o approve_v in_o the_o council_n his_o word_n be_v these_o quamobrem_fw-la nostrae_fw-la sedis_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la 16_o ascita_fw-la nostraque_fw-la vice_n &_o loco_fw-la cum_fw-la potes●tae_fw-la usus_fw-la eiusmodi_fw-la non_fw-la absque_fw-la exquisita_fw-la severitate_fw-la sententiam_fw-la exequeris_fw-la etc._n etc._n wherefore_o you_o take_v the_o authority_n of_o our_o sea_n upon_o you_o and_o use_v our_o room_n and_o place_n with_o the_o power_n thereto_o belong_v shall_v execute_v with_o punctual_a severity_n the_o sentence_n give_v against_o nestorius_n to_o wit_n of_o excommunication_n and_o deposition_n and_o that_o if_o he_o do_v not_o revoke_v his_o heresy_n within_o ten_o day_n after_o this_o our_o admonition_n give_v unto_o he_o that_o you_o present_o provide_v the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n of_o another_o bishop_n and_o let_v he_o know_v that_o he_o be_v by_o all_o manner_n of_o way_n cut_v of_o from_o our_o body_n so_o he_o 47._o thus_o write_v pope_n celestinus_fw-la from_o rome_n where_o he_o have_v hold_v a_o particular_a council_n and_o condemn_v the_o heresy_n of_o nestorius_n in_o the_o west_n before_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n be_v gather_v in_o the_o east_n in_o which_o coucell_n of_o ephesus_n he_o not_o be_v able_a to_o be_v present_a as_o be_v aforesaid_a design_v his_o authority_n to_o s._n cyril_n as_o well_o for_o preside_v in_o the_o same_o council_n as_o also_o for_o execute_v the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n which_o proceed_n of_o celestinus_fw-la be_v recount_v afterward_o again_o by_o the_o say_a council_n and_o approve_v in_o a_o general_a letter_n which_o the_o whole_a council_n write_v unto_o the_o 17_o two_o emperor_n which_o begin_v vestram_fw-la christianissimi_fw-la reges_fw-la etc._n etc._n 48._o but_o this_o be_v confirm_v yet_o further_o for_o that_o the_o say_v holy_a father_n celestinus_fw-la send_v from_o rome_n three_o other_o legate_n to_o join_v with_o s._n cyrill_n in_o that_o legation_n for_o the_o presidence_n of_o the_o council_n whereof_o two_o be_v bishop_n proiectus_fw-la and_o arcadius_n the_o three_o a_o priest_n only_o call_v philip_n who_o always_o be_v admit_v for_o legate_n in_o the_o council_n do_v firm_a &_o subscribe_v their_o name_n after_o s._n cyrill_n before_o the_o other_o patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o rest_n yea_o when_o the_o two_o bishop-legate_n be_v absent_a from_o the_o council_n upon_o any_o occasion_n this_o philip_n though_o but_o a_o priest_n do_v subscribe_v next_o after_o s._n cyrill_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o the_o council_n itself_o tomo_fw-la ephesus_n 2._o cap._n 13._o and_o moreover_o at_o his_o first_o come_v and_o appearance_n in_o the_o council_n he_o use_v this_o speech_n gratias_fw-la agamus_fw-la sanctae_fw-la venerandaeque_fw-la huic_fw-la synodo_fw-la quòd_fw-la literis_fw-la celestini_n sanctissimi_fw-la beatissimique_fw-la
of_o god_n and_o renown_a pillar_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n ever_o most_o due_a unto_o they_o for_o the_o expound_v of_o those_o scripture_n as_o he_o do_v never_o urge_v any_o thing_n more_o earnest_o or_o eager_o against_o heretic_n than_o their_o authority_n for_o exposition_n of_o sacred_a writ_n which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v natural_o hateful_a unto_o they_o who_o be_v inventor_n of_o novelty_n &_o enemy_n to_o antiquity_n &_o false_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n which_o all_o sectary_n be_v as_o be_v define_v and_o determine_v in_o the_o second_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o ephesus_n against_o the_o heretic_n nestorius_n 14._o and_o therefore_o say_v the_o say_a s._n augustine_n unto_o julian_n finem_fw-la the_o pelagian_n heretic_n probavimus_fw-la catholicorum_n authoritate_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la qui_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la asserunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o have_v prove_v this_o now_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n saint_n that_o do_v affirm_v it_o against_o you_o and_o they_o be_v such_o man_n and_o so_o great_a in_o the_o catholic_n say_v which_o be_v spread_v over_o the_o world_n ut_fw-la vestra_fw-la fragilis_fw-la &_o argutula_fw-la novitas_fw-la solo_fw-la illorum_fw-la conteratur_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la that_o your_o vain_a and_o subtle_a novelty_n be_v crush_v whole_o by_o their_o only_a authority_n and_o then_o again_o auctoritate_fw-la primitus_fw-la eorum_fw-la vestra_fw-la est_fw-la contumacia_fw-la comprimenda_fw-la first_o of_o all_o your_o contumacy_n be_v to_o be_v repress_v or_o beat_v down_o by_o their_o authority_n he_o mean_v the_o ancient_a father_n and_o this_o be_v the_o principal_a father_n way_n that_o s._n augustine_n take_v with_o they_o though_o all_o these_o heretic_n as_o forerunner_n of_o the_o protestant_n be_v very_o frequent_a in_o cite_v of_o scripture_n as_o fast_o as_o any_o other_o heretic_n 15._o but_o s._n augustine_n will_v have_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v seek_v out_o by_o the_o interpretation_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o so_o do_v his_o word_n flat_o prove_v tun_n ●ypo_fw-la say_v he_o limes_z sanae_fw-la fidei_fw-la defenditur_fw-la quando_fw-la termini_fw-la quos_fw-la posuerunt_fw-la sancti_fw-la patres_fw-la non_fw-la transseruntur_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la imo_fw-la obseruantur_fw-la &_o defensantur_fw-la then_o the_o limit_n of_o sound_n say_v to_o wit_n the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n defend_v by_o we_o when_o we_o do_v not_o change_v and_o alter_v the_o bound_n thereof_o place_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n but_o rather_o do_v observe_v and_o defend_v the_o same_o that_o be_v we_o do_v follow_v their_o interpretation_n and_o ancient_a exposition_n 16._o and_o further_a yet_o reason_v of_o this_o matter_n in_o his_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr nuptijs_fw-la &_o concupiscentia_fw-la to_o the_o count_n or_o earl_n valerius_n i_o mean_v concern_v the_o sincere_a exposition_n of_o the_o 29._o ancient_a father_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o novellant_n he_o say_v quid_fw-la dicam_fw-la de_fw-la ipsis_fw-la sacrarum_fw-la litter_n arum_fw-la tractatoribus_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o catholica_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la floruerunt_fw-la quomodo_fw-la haec_fw-la non_fw-la conati_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o alios_fw-la sensus_fw-la vertere_fw-la quoniani_n stabiles_fw-la erant_fw-la in_o antiquissima_fw-la &_o robustissima_fw-la fide_fw-la non_fw-la autem_fw-la novitio_fw-la movebantur_fw-la errore_fw-la what_o shall_v i_o say_v of_o the_o expositor_n themselves_o of_o sacred_a scripture_n which_o have_v flourish_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n how_o they_o never_o attempt_v to_o turn_v these_o place_n allege_v into_o other_o sense_n then_o from_o antiquity_n they_o have_v receive_v they_o for_o that_o they_o be_v most_o firm_a and_o stable_n in_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o strong_a say_v and_o be_v nothing_o move_v with_o late_o hatch_v error_n so_o he_o 17._o and_o for_o confirmation_n of_o this_o have_v allege_v the_o example_n both_o of_o s._n cyprian_n and_o s._n ambrose_n show_v and_o prove_v out_o of_o they_o that_o original_a sin_n be_v in_o infant_n baptism_n and_o that_o for_o remedy_n and_o remove_v thereof_o they_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n with_o the_o old_a ceremony_n of_o exorcism_n and_o exufflation_n the_o pelagian_n heretic_n that_o not_o only_o deny_v but_o scoff_v at_o these_o thing_n call_v the_o use_n thereof_o manicheisme_n be_v answer_v by_o s._n august_n thus_o hosiste_v audiat_fw-la dicere_fw-la manichaeos_n &_o antiquissimam_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la traditionem_fw-la isto_fw-la nefario_fw-la crimine_fw-la aspergat_fw-la qua_fw-la exor●izantur_fw-la ut_fw-la dixi_fw-la &_o exufflantur_fw-la paruuli_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v he_o dare_v to_o call_v those_o two_o father_n manichaean_n and_o let_v he_o lay_v the_o same_o wicked_a crime_n of_o manicheisme_n upon_o the_o most_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n by_o which_o tradition_n infant_n as_o before_o i_o have_v say_v be_v exorcize_v and_o breathe_v on_o at_o their_o baptism_n that_o by_o these_o mean_v they_o may_v be_v translate_v from_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n unto_o the_o kingdom_n of_o ibid._n christ._n so_o s._n augustine_n who_o add_v present_o that_o albeit_o he_o be_v scorn_v at_o for_o this_o by_o heretic_n yet_o such_o be_v his_o resolution_n that_o he_o burst_v forth_o into_o these_o word_n follow_v nos_fw-la paratiores_fw-la sumus_fw-la cumistis_fw-la viris_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la christi_fw-la in_o huiu●_n fidei_fw-la antiquitate_fw-la frmati_fw-la quaelibet_fw-la maledicta_fw-la &_o contumelas_n perpeti_fw-la quám_fw-la pelagiani_n cuiuslibet_fw-la eloquij_fw-la praedicatione_n laudari_fw-la we_o be_v more_o ready_a say_v he_o with_o these_o father_n and_o with_o the_o church_n of_o god_n root_v in_o the_o antiquity_n of_o this_o say_v to_o suffer_v &_o ceremony_n abide_v all_o kind_n of_o reproach_n and_o contumely_n then_o to_o be_v exalt_v with_o the_o praise_n of_o any_o pelagian_n eloquence_n whatsoever_o and_o do_v not_o this_o fall_n just_a upon_o the_o neck_n of_o all_o our_o modern_a protestant_n do_v they_o not_o scorn_v deride_v and_o jest_n as_o much_o at_o these_o two_o ancient_a ceremony_n of_o exorcism_n &_o exufflation_n as_o ever_o the_o pelagian_n heretic_n do_v 18._o with_o what_o face_n then_o can_v they_o challenge_v s._n augustine_n to_o be_v they_o nay_o be_v not_o pelagius_n and_o his_o rank_n of_o heretic_n fit_a for_o their_o society_n since_o they_o do_v so_o jump_v and_o conspire_v together_o and_o that_o against_o s._n augustine_n and_o the_o catholic_n doctor_n nay_o i_o find_v s._n augustine_n to_o go_v yet_o much_o further_o in_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o patronise_a of_o the_o reverend_a rank_n of_o holy_a father_n against_o profane_a heretic_n though_o some_o of_o those_o ancient_a worthy_n who_o he_o commend_v live_v either_o in_o his_o own_o time_n or_o not_o very_o long_o before_o he_o for_o that_o eyt_n their_o doctrine_n against_o julian_n the_o pelagian_n that_o make_v so_o light_a account_n of_o they_o and_o scoff_v at_o they_o he_o expostulate_v thus_o numquid_fw-la iraeneus_n cyprianus_n reti●ius_n pelagiau_n olympius_n hilarius_n gregorius_n basilius_n ambrose_n &_o joannes_n chrysostomus_n de_fw-fr plebe_fw-la a_o fece_n sellulariorum_fw-la sicut_fw-la tullianè_fw-la iocaris_fw-la etc._n etc._n be_v iraeneus_n cyprian_n and_o the_o rest_n here_o name_v of_o the_o low_a house_n or_o have_v they_o vulgar_a seat_n in_o your_o parliament_n as_o out_o of_o your_o tullian_n eloquence_n you_o do_v scoff_n be_v they_o raise_v up_o for_o envy_n of_o you_o be_v they_o young_a soldier_n or_o auditory_a scholar_n be_v they_o shipman_n taverner_n host_n cook_n butcher_n be_v they_o dissolute_a young_a man_n make_v of_o apostata_fw-la monk_n &_o c._n who_o you_o by_o your_o scoff_a urbanity_n or_o rather_o vanity_n do_v exagitate_v vilify_v condemn_v and_o contemn_v 19_o thus_o write_v s._n augustine_n that_o holy_a saint_n and_o great_a doctor_n in_o god_n church_n against_o the_o malepert_a sauciness_n of_o that_o heretic_n that_o so_o little_o regard_v and_o so_o base_o account_v of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o have_v allege_v their_o authority_n he_o make_v this_o inference_n of_o honour_n and_o reverence_n on_o their_o behalf_n talibus_fw-la post_fw-la apostolos_fw-la sancta_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la plantatoribus_fw-la rigatoribus_fw-la adificatoribus_fw-la pastoribus_fw-la nutritoribus_fw-la crevit_fw-la ideo_fw-la prophanas_fw-la voces_fw-la vestrae_fw-la novitatis_fw-la expavit_fw-la under_o such_o planter_n after_o the_o apostle_n under_o such_o waterer_n builder_n pastor_n and_o nourisher_n as_o these_o be_v and_o be_v have_v the_o church_n grow_v up_o and_o do_v tremble_v at_o the_o profane_a voice_n of_o your_o novelty_n and_o a_o little_a after_o repeat_v again_o for_o honour_n cause_n the_o very_a same_o father_n with_o addition_n only_o of_o two_o more_o of_o his_o time_n to_o wit_n pope_n innocentius_n the_o first_o &_o s._n hierome_n he_o account_v their_o testimony_n and_o of_o such_o other_o as_o hold_v communion_n and_o participation_n with_o they_o to_o be_v the_o very_a speak_a voice_n and_o lively_a oracle_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o
of_o the_o place_n above_o cite_v the_o excuse_n of_o protestant_n refute_v bern._n ser._n 17._o s●per_v cant._n tit._n 3._o 10._o 11_o s._n paul_n judgement_n of_o a_o heretic_n 2._o tim._n 2._o 17._o ep._n juda●_n s._n judes_n sentence_n of_o heretic_n the_o detestation_n of_o heretic_n and_o heresy_n by_o ancient_a father_n 2._o john_n 1._o 10._o 11._o de_fw-fr scriptor_n eccle._n in_o joan._n lib._n 3._o advers_a haeces_fw-la cap._n 3._o irenaeus_n ibidem_fw-la ☞_o cyprian_a l._n 3._o cp_n 1._o ☞_o athanasin_n vita_fw-la antonius_fw-la ☞_o the_o senerity_n of_o saint_n cyprian_n s._n athanas._n &_o s._n antony_n in_o avoid_v heretic_n leo_fw-la ser._n 18._o the_o passion_n christicap_n 4._o that_o heretic_n be_v no_o christian_n lib._n 2._o advers_a haereses_fw-la cap._n 9_o that_o heretic_n by_o no_o good_a work_n can_v be_v save_v de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ibidem_fw-la aug._n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr servant_n dom_fw-la in_o monte_fw-fr c._n 4._o et_fw-la ep_n 24._o ad_fw-la donat._n presb_n &_o l._n 4._o the_o bapt_a contra_fw-la donat_n c._n 17._o et_fw-la tract_n 6._o in_o euang_n loan_n et_fw-fr l._n 2._o cont_n petil._n c._n 98._o et_fw-la l._n 1._o cont_n gaudent_fw-la c._n 33._o et_fw-la alibi_fw-la heresy_n the_o great_a sin_n of_o all_o other_o how_o a_o man_n may_v discern_v between_o catholic_n religion_n &_o heresy_n aug._n de_fw-fr verb._n apost_n serm_n 1._o in_o commentar_n in_o 24._o matt._n v_o 36._o de_fw-fr praescrip_n c._n 34._o the_o necessity_n of_o clear_a and_o universal_a rule_n in_o matter_n of_o belief_n isa._n 38._o num._n 23._o 19_o how_o this_o general_a rule_n may_v be_v find_v out_o joan._n 3._o 20._o the_o way_n of_o every_o man_n private_a spirit_n whether_o only_a scripture_n be_v the_o infallible_a way_n isa._n 35._o 8._o cont._n haer_fw-mi cap._n 2._o august_n tract_n 18._o in_o joan_n &_o lib_n 7._o in_o gen._n ad_fw-la lit●_n cap_n 9_o 2._o cor._n 2._o 16._o de_fw-fr prescript_n cap._n 17._o ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la labour_n lose_v to_o deal_v with_o heretic_n by_o only_a scripture_n cap._n 20._o de_fw-fr prescript_n c._n 17._o ibid._n c._n 39_o a_o perspicuous_a example_n in_o epist._n ad_fw-la paulin._n presb._n presumption_n of_o heretic_n in_o the_o scripture_n the_o only_a true_a way_n of_o judge_v by_o the_o church_n aug._n in_o psal_n 44._o et_fw-la 47._o &_o l._n 2._o cont_n petil._n c._n 32._o &_o de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccl._n c._n 14._o &_o in_o epist._n joan_n tract_n 1._o &_o 2._o in_o brevic_n collat_n 3._o diei_fw-la c._n 4._o matt._n 5._o 14_o ibidem_fw-la 15._o exod._n 13._o 12._o jud._n 6._o 37._o 38._o 39_o 40._o matt._n 16._o 18._o de_fw-fr praesctipt_n c._n 14_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n ibid._n v_o 28._o matt._n 28._o 20._o 2_o cor._n 11._o 16_o dan._n 6._o 15._o mat._n 16._o 19_o iren._n lib._n 3._o cont_n haeres_fw-la cap._n 4._o a_o notable_a testimony_n of_o s._n iren._n for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n to_o what_o trial_n the_o ancient_a father_n provoke_v the_o heretic_n of_o their_o tyme._n videsupr_fw-la the_o issue_n of_o this_o consideration_n how_o out_o of_o the_o premise_n every_o man_n may_v judge_v in_o what_o state_n he_o stand_v for_o be_v heretic_n or_o catholic_a 3._o reg._n 22._o whether_o man_n may_v be_v save_v in_o disterent_fw-la religion_n premonit_fw-la pag._n 34._o m._n meluin_n secret_a atheism_n aug._n epist_n 48._o add_v vincent_n aug._n l._n 18._o de_fw-la ciu_o dei_fw-la cap._n 5●_n lib._n 1._o epist_n epist_n 1._o ad_fw-la magn._n hierom._n l._n 3._o apol._n adversus_fw-la ruff._n post_fw-la medium_n basil._n apud_fw-la theod._n l._n 4._o bist_fw-ge c._n 17._o nazianzen_n tract_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la ruff._n interpret_v non_fw-fr longé_fw-fr ab_fw-la initio_fw-la what_o sort_n of_o heresy_n be_v more_o damnable_a leo_fw-la tract_n cont_n eutich_n that_o protestant_n opinion_n be_v true_o heresy_n luther_n in_o art_n ad_fw-la lovaniens_fw-la luther_n condemn_v all_o zwinglians_n and_o caluiniste_n for_o heretic_n beware_v of_o john_n calvin_n the_o caluinist_n condemn_v for_o heretic_n by_o the_o lutheran_n the_o war_n of_o john_n calvin_n with_o jesus_n christ._n of_o the_o dissension_n &_o disagreement_n of_o protestant_n and_o puritan_n &_o whether_o they_o be_v he_o resy_n one_o to_o the_o other_o answer_v pag._n 20._o the_o different_a origin_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n in_o the_o protestant_n puritan_n and_o catholic_n church_n barorwe_n book_n etc._n etc._n perpetual_a government_n of_o the_o church_n the_o puritan_n excommunicate_v as_o schismatickes_n and_o heretic_n by_o the_o protestant_n constitut._n can._n 4._o 56._o can._n 7._o 8._o can._n 9_o 10._o &_o 12._o english_a protestant_n do_v not_o make_v one_o part_n often_o of_o those_o christian_n which_o condenne_v the_o for_o heretic_n two_o important_a consideration_n hester_n 1._o 1._o cor._n 15_o 28._o act._n 26._o 9_o the_o daily_a conversion_n of_o so_o many_o learned_a man_n in_o england_n cyprian_a l._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles_n premonit_fw-la pag._n 36._o premonit_fw-la pag._n 36._o the_o believe_v of_o scripture_n not_o sufficient_a to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o catholic_a a_o example_n of_o the_o author_n case_n himself_o luther_n l._n cont_n regen_n angliae_fw-la f._n 342._o tom_n 1._o the_o strange_a presumptuous_a speech_n of_o luther_n luther_n not_o ever_o believe_v by_o we_o although_o he_o cyte_v the_o scripture_n de_fw-fr prescript_n cap._n 42._o abuse_v of_o scripture_n by_o heretic_n cont._n haer_fw-mi cap._n 35._o see_v the_o place_n it_o be_v well_o worth_a the_o read_n de_fw-fr prescript_n c._n 4._o controversy_n grow_v endless_a by_o appeal_n only_o to_o scripture_n 3._o reg._n 22._o 20._o 21._o 22._o 23_o ib._n v._n 24._o ●_o cor._n 2._o 25._o scripture_n ridiculous_o allege_v by_o the_o puritan_n that_o scripture_n be_v not_o write_v for_o many_o year_n after_o their_o church_n begin_v how_o scripture_n be_v first_o write_v deut._n 2._o 7._o gen._n 18._o 19_o matt._n 23._o 20._o the_o church_n continue_v many_o year_n without_o write_a scripture_n iren._n lib._n 3._o cont_n har_z cap._n 4._o how_o heretic_n do_v handle_v scripture_n how_o to_o know_v what_o be_v true_o scripture_n the_o place_n be_v above_o cite_v how_o to_o know_v what_o be_v scripture_n and_o what_o be_v not_o apud_fw-la trenaeun_n l._n 1._o c._n 20._o 22._o 29._o a_o put_fw-mi aug._n l._n 32._o count_n faust._n c._n 2._o &_o l._n 334_o cap._n 3._o what_o book_n be_v now_o in_o controversy_n hos._n 13._o protestant_n follow_v their_o own_o choice_n or_o election_n in_o admit_v or_o reject_v scripture_n 2._o cor._n 2_o 15._o 16._o premonit_fw-la pag._n 36._o dan._n 6._o 15._o bellarm_n division_n of_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n a_o sufficient_a prescription_n for_o authorise_v these_o book_n for_o divine_a scripture_n be_v 1200_o year_n ago_o touch_v the_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o he._n brew_v how_o calvin_n oppose_v himself_o to_o luther_n &_o yet_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o catholic_n why_o the_o apocalips_n reject_v by_o luther_n be_v accept_v of_o calvin_n &_o caluinist_n the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o consideration_n how_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n may_v be_v try_v 1._o 2._o 3._o 4._o hier._n c._n 3._o in_o epist_n ad_fw-la ephes._n aug._n in_o psal_n 140._o praef_n prope_fw-la initium_fw-la lib._n 3._o ep._n epist_n 19_o constant._n ambros._n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o in_o lucem_fw-la lib._n 4._o epist._n regist_n epist_n 40._o the_o danger_n of_o rash_a use_n or_o abuse_v the_o scripture_n in_o commentar_n ad_fw-la galat_n 2._o lib._n 3._o in_o lucan_n c._n 3._o prope_fw-la finen_n lib._n &_o cap._n cap._n 39_o prescript_n the_o cause_n of_o heresy_n the_o heretical_a objection_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v easy_a &_o open_a answer_v psal._n 1_o 8._o cont._n haer_fw-mi cap._n 35._o aug._n l._n 1._o de_fw-la doctrina_fw-la christiana_n cap._n 6._o de_fw-fr prescript_n c._n 9_o s._n august_n will_v not_o have_v believe_v the_o gospel_n but_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o difference_n between_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n in_o gather_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n s._n augustine_n position_n of_o the_o church_n aug._n l._n 2._o cont_n petil._n c._n 33._o &_o lib._n deunit_fw-la eccles_n c._n 14._o aug._n in_o ep_a loan_n tract_n 2._o that_o it_o ●_o visible_a aug._n ibib_fw-la that_o it_o consist_v of_o good_a and_o bad_a that_o it_o can_v fail_v or_o perish_v aug._n conc_fw-fr 2_o in_o psal_n ●01_n s._n august_n full_o agree_v with_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o modern_a catholic_n aug._n l._n 21._o decivit_fw-la c._n 13._o &_o l._n 6._o cont_n juiian_a cap._n 5._o in_o psal._n 31._o prope_fw-la init_fw-la enchir._n c._n 67._o &_o 68_o &_o l._n the_o fid_fw-we &_o op_n c._n 25._o l._n 21._o de_fw-fr civit._n dei_fw-la c._n 21._o &_o 26._o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o chapter_n &_o consideration_n vincent_n cont_n haer_fw-mi cap._n 36._o
be_v no_o catholic_a christian_n do_v profess_v the_o same_o as_o have_v be_v already_o evident_o show_v that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o will_v open_o bear_v the_o world_n in_o hand_n that_o they_o build_v their_o whole_a religion_n upon_o the_o main_a foundation_n of_o the_o scripture_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v out_o of_o question_n that_o they_o rather_o build_v upon_o their_o own_o idle_a head_n and_o fanatical_a spirit_n forsomuch_o as_o they_o deduce_v their_o acknowledgement_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o interpretation_n thereof_o from_o their_o own_o brain_n sense_n and_o private_a fancy_n and_o not_o from_o any_o more_o stable_a authority_n at_o all_o 21._o this_o be_v make_v evident_a and_o perspicuous_a if_o we_o exnmine_v any_o the_o least_o sect_n or_o sectary_n in_o the_o world_n or_o compare_v many_o of_o sundry_a sect_n together_o for_o that_o every_o one_o of_o they_o though_o as_o opposite_a among_o themselves_o as_o heaven_n and_o hell_n light_a and_o darkness_n god_n and_o beliall_n yet_o will_v all_o pretend_v to_o build_v upon_o god_n his_o word_n all_o will_v appeal_v unto_o scripture_n the_o lutheran_n caluivist_n anabaptist_n brownist_n protestant_n and_o every_o other_o sectary_n but_o when_o you_o tie_v they_o to_o the_o point_n bring_v they_o to_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o scripture_n question_v they_o concern_v these_o two_o particular_n to_o wit_n which_o be_v scripture_n &_o how_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v then_o do_v they_o appear_v in_o the_o lively_a colour_n of_o heretic_n then_o do_v they_o discover_v their_o own_o heretical_a fancy_n to_o be_v both_o all_o and_o the_o chief_a ground_n that_o ever_o they_o have_v to_o build_v their_o religion_n upon_o as_o by_o the_o ensue_a consideration_n will_v better_o appear_v in_o both_o the_o head_n before_o touch_v the_o three_o consideration_n if_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n the_o divine_a write_v i_o mean_v so_o call_v because_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v write_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a man_n be_v in_o their_o own_o nature_n of_o that_o sublime_a excellency_n and_o transcendent_a eminency_n as_o have_v be_v former_o scripture_n decipher_v and_o discover_v unto_o we_o if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o say_v sacred_a writ_n be_v not_o humane_a but_o divine_a not_o the_o word_n of_o any_o mortal_a man_n nor_o procede_v from_o any_o earthly_a spirit_n but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o immortal_a god_n breathe_v non_fw-la he_o heavenly_a spirit_n and_o consequent_o if_o it_o be_v not_o in_o itself_o most_o holy_a sacred_a sure_a certain_a and_o of_o infallible_a truth_n then_o let_v we_o assure_o know_v that_o as_o on_o the_o one_o side_n it_o be_v a_o capital_a crime_n of_o sacrilege_n to_o decree_v any_o thing_n for_o scripture_n which_o be_v not_o or_o to_o intrude_v any_o humane_a writing_n into_o the_o participation_n or_o association_n of_o god_n divine_a word_n so_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n no_o less_o damnable_a on_o the_o other_o side_n to_o call_v rash_o into_o question_n or_o to_o disauthorize_v any_o part_n or_o parcel_n of_o that_o which_o be_v scripture_n indeed_o or_o to_o deny_v thereunto_o the_o honour_n due_a to_o divine_v and_o sacred_a writ_n and_o therefore_o it_o high_o import_v we_o aswell_o in_o the_o one_o as_o in_o the_o other_o to_o manage_v ourselves_o with_o all_o humility_n sobriety_n modesty_n and_o circumspection_n in_o a_o matter_n so_o weighty_a as_o the_o scripture_n be_v and_o so_o near_o concern_v the_o eternal_a salvation_n or_o damnation_n of_o our_o soul_n 23._o now_o than_o if_o the_o point_n stand_v thus_o it_o behove_v we_o indeed_o if_o in_o any_o other_o matter_n then_o especial_o in_o this_o to_o use_v all_o careful_a and_o exact_a diligence_n that_o we_o may_v find_v out_o that_o certain_a rule_n and_o infallible_a direction_n before_o mention_v that_o by_o the_o immediate_a guidance_n thereof_o we_o may_v most_o certain_o attain_v unto_o this_o to_o wit_n to_o know_v what_o be_v true_o scripture_n and_o what_o be_v not_o &_o if_o ever_o this_o be_v necessary_a then_o much_o more_o in_o these_o late_a and_o worse_a day_n and_o time_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n when_o as_o no_o small_a controversy_n be_v stir_v up_o about_o the_o same_o 24._o for_o whereas_o so_o many_o dangerous_a sect_n and_o heresy_n of_o perdition_n to_o speak_v in_o the_o phrase_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n cite_v be_v raise_v up_o from_o hell_n in_o these_o our_o unfortunate_a time_n unfortunate_a indeed_o in_o respect_n or_o they_o and_o that_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o one_o age_n since_o one_o luxurious_a luther_n open_v the_o first_o gap_n to_o the_o general_a detection_n all_o which_o schism_n and_o heresy_n as_o before_o have_v be_v notify_v covert_o shroud_v themselves_o under_o the_o name_n and_o pretence_a veil_n of_o scripture_n the_o first_o contention_n and_o now_o most_o necessary_a question_n not_o to_o be_v discuss_v with_o they_o be_v what_o book_n of_o the_o bible_n or_o part_n thereof_o be_v true_o scripture_n &_o what_o be_v to_o be_v wipe_v away_o &_o to_o be_v cut_v offrom_n the_o sacred_a canon_n of_o holy_a writ_n and_o all_o to_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v undoubted_o know_v upon_o what_o ground_n we_o may_v stand_v safe_o in_o cite_v authority_n from_o thence_o 25._o furthermore_o forasmuch_o as_o all_o the_o book_n of_o the_o sacred_a bible_n god_n holy_a volume_n have_v common_o &_o ancient_o hitherto_o be_v divide_v into_o these_o three_o order_n or_o rank_n the_o first_o into_o such_o as_o be_v never_o call_v into_o question_n by_o catholic_n 3._o man_n though_o there_o never_o want_v heretic_n call_v themselves_o christian_n &_o reform_a christian_n as_o the_o protestant_n do_v at_o this_o day_n that_o impugn_a the_o same_o as_o the_o basilidim_n and_o the_o marcionist_n reject_v the_o old_a testament_n as_o indict_v by_o a_o evil_a god_n and_o faustus_n manichaeus_n contemn_v all_o the_o four_o ghospelle_n as_o write_v by_o impostor_n 26._o the_o second_o into_o such_o book_n as_o albeit_o some_o man_n do_v for_o some_o time_n doubt_n whether_o they_o be_v canonical_a or_o not_o yet_o afterwards_o they_o be_v receive_v into_o canon_n by_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o be_v hold_v for_o divine_a book_n write_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o of_o such_o infallible_a truth_n as_o they_o may_v be_v a_o canon_n or_o rule_n or_o sure_a direction_n unto_o our_o infirmity_n for_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v find_v in_o they_o for_o so_o s._n augustine_n from_o the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n describe_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n canonical_a be_v apply_v as_o a_o fit_a epethete_n unto_o the_o scripture_n 27._o the_o three_o order_n be_v into_o such_o book_n which_o notwithstanding_o they_o go_v ordinary_a in_o the_o common_a bibles_n and_o contain_v in_o they_o many_o good_a moral_a instruction_n of_o piety_n and_o be_v sometime_o by_o some_o particular_a man_n esteem_v for_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o scripture_n yet_o be_v they_o never_o so_o account_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v call_v apecrypha_n that_o be_v hide_v or_o obscure_a for_o that_o their_o authority_n be_v never_o receive_v or_o publish_v general_o in_o the_o church_n and_o for_o such_o be_v reckon_v the_o three_o and_o four_o of_o esdras_n the_o appendix_n of_o the_o book_n of_o job_n the_o book_n of_o hieremy_n entitle_v pastor_n the_o prayer_n of_o king_n manasses_n and_o final_o the_o 151._o psalm_n 28._o i_o say_v now_o this_o tripartite_a division_n of_o holy_a writ_n be_v thus_o general_o admit_v and_o receive_v by_o all_o orthodox_n divine_v do_v it_o not_o concern_v every_o man_n that_o be_v careful_a of_o his_o soul_n salvation_n to_o inquire_v diligent_o after_o the_o pursuit_n and_o knowledge_n of_o these_o thing_n especial_o in_o this_o general_a summon_n and_o appeal_n of_o all_o unto_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o final_a decision_n of_o all_o controversy_n 29._o and_o now_o to_o speak_v something_o to_o the_o point_n concern_v these_o three_o rank_n and_o order_n of_o book_n the_o three_o controversy_n of_o these_o be_v general_o reject_v by_o all_o as_o well_o catholic_n as_o protestant_n the_o first_o be_v admit_v by_o all_o all_o the_o question_n than_o be_v concern_v the_o second_o and_o this_o comprehend_v sundry_a book_n both_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n as_o of_o hester_n baruch_n certain_a parcelle_v of_o daniel_n the_o book_n of_o tobias_n judith_n sapientia_fw-la ecclesiasticus_fw-la and_o the_o first_o and_o second_o of_o maccabee_n out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o certain_a part_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n mark_v s._n luke_n and_o s._n john_n with_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n s._n jude_n the_o 2._o of_o s._n peter_n the_o 2._o and_o 3._o of_o s._n john_n and_o the_o apocalypse_n